Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n ancient_a scripture_n true_a 3,390 5 4.3044 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A47617 An answer to the Bishop of Condom's book entituled, An exposition of the doctrin of the Caholick Church, upon matters of coutroversie [sic]. Written originally in French. La Bastide, Marc-Antoine de, ca. 1624-1704, attributed name. 1676 (1676) Wing L100; ESTC R221701 162,768 460

There are 33 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

some_o corporal_a or_o pecuniary_a pennance_n impose_v upon_o they_o therefore_o also_o it_o have_v often_o be_v observe_v in_o our_o church_n that_o the_o least_o regular_a person_n be_v most_o subject_a to_o forsake_v our_o communion_n because_o that_o while_o they_o continue_v in_o their_o sin_n among_o we_o they_o find_v nothing_o that_o may_v assure_v they_o of_o the_o pardon_n and_o absolution_n which_o they_o hope_v for_o of_o a_o confessor_n and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o confessor_n or_o director_n of_o conscience_n as_o they_o be_v term_v often_o give_v wise_a counsel_n it_o be_v but_o too_o true_a also_o that_o the_o counsellor_n themselves_o very_o often_o take_v occasion_n thereby_o to_o corrupt_v themselves_o or_o to_o insinuate_v themselves_o in_o all_o public_a affair_n of_o state_n or_o in_o the_o particular_a affair_n of_o private_a family_n and_o history_n be_v but_o too_o full_a of_o the_o evil_n which_o have_v happen_v unto_o the_o public_a and_o to_o particular_a person_n the_o very_a consolation_n also_o which_o they_o give_v sinner_n in_o pronounce_v their_o absolution_n do_v turn_v into_o security_n and_o to_o conclude_v as_o have_v already_o be_v open_o declare_v upon_o another_o subject_n it_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v that_o they_o who_o live_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o auricular_a confession_n be_v better_a people_n than_o those_o who_o confess_v themselves_o chief_o unto_o god_n the_o council_n here_o join_v extreme_a unction_n unto_o repentance_n unction_n extreme_a unction_n there_o be_v this_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o precedent_a article_n and_o this_o that_o this_o latter_a be_v nothing_o near_o of_o so_o great_a consequence_n this_o be_v nothing_o in_o a_o manner_n but_o a_o useless_a ceremony_n and_o a_o evil_a custom_n whereof_o the_o error_n may_v be_v tolerable_a in_o itself_o if_o it_o be_v not_o of_o dangerous_a influence_n in_o introduce_v into_o religion_n lesser_a matter_n which_o may_v by_o little_a and_o little_a turn_n away_o the_o soul_n and_o heart_n from_o solid_a piety_n we_o may_v upon_o better_a ground_n call_v this_o ceremony_n a_o sacrament_n than_o penance_n marriage_n or_o order_n which_o follow_v this_o because_o at_o least_o the_o oil_n may_v there_o hold_v the_o place_n of_o a_o visible_a sign_n as_o the_o council_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v not_o fail_v to_o give_v to_o understand_v but_o after_o all_o this_o pretend_a sacrament_n have_v this_o common_a with_o penance_n and_o the_o other_o which_o we_o admit_v not_o as_o sacrament_n that_o the_o institution_n make_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n herein_o be_v only_o found_v upon_o some_o custom_n practise_v on_o particular_a occasion_n which_o be_v now_o cease_v st._n james_n speak_v of_o the_o virtue_n of_o prayer_n say_v and_o that_o only_o once_o in_o conclude_v his_o epistle_n be_v any_o sick_a among_o you_o let_v he_o call_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o pray_v over_o he_o anoint_v he_o with_o oil_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o faith_n shall_v save_v the_o sick_a and_o the_o lord_n shall_v raise_v he_o up_o and_o if_o he_o have_v commit_v sin_n they_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o the_o roman_a catechism_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o these_o word_n have_v allusion_n unto_o what_o be_v say_v before_o of_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v depart_v from_o our_o saviour_n preach_v that_o man_n shall_v repent_v 13._o s._n mark_v cap._n 6.12_o 13._o that_o they_o cast_v out_o many_o devil_n &_o anoint_v with_o oil_n many_o that_o be_v sick_a heal_v they_o because_o indeed_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o disciple_n who_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n do_v then_o heal_v many_o either_o by_o anoint_v they_o or_o only_o by_o lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o they_o which_o cause_v also_o that_o one_o of_o the_o great_a man_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n speak_v more_o full_o than_o the_o catechism_n do_v open_o acknowledge_v that_o these_o word_n of_o st._n james_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o anoint_v exercise_v by_o the_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o the_o sick_a 5._o cardinal_n cajetan_n upon_o s._n jam._n 5._o such_o as_o be_v relate_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o not_o of_o the_o extreme_a unction_n which_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n this_o be_v all_o the_o foundation_n or_o all_o the_o pretext_n which_o the_o council_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v for_o the_o institute_n of_o such_o a_o sacrament_n what_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o do_v the_o thing_n itself_o according_a to_o the_o word_n and_o the_o intention_n of_o st._n james_n st._n james_n testify_v that_o it_o be_v to_o heal_v the_o sick_a and_o which_o be_v very_o remarkable_a the_o other_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n unto_o which_o these_o of_o st._n james_n allude_v as_o the_o roman_a catechism_n do_v agree_v speak_v only_o indeed_o of_o heal_v the_o sick_a unto_o which_o it_o be_v true_a that_o st._n james_n add_v that_o if_o the_o sick_a have_v commit_v sin_n they_o shall_v be_v forgive_v he_o which_o be_v principal_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o those_o sin_n that_o may_v have_v draw_v the_o chastisement_n of_o sickness_n upon_o the_o sick_a person_n the_o roman_a church_n do_v on_o the_o contrary_a make_v extreme_a unction_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n as_o baptism_n and_o regard_v little_a or_o nothing_o the_o health_n of_o the_o body_n acknowledge_v that_o it_o have_v not_o now_o the_o miraculous_a gift_n of_o heal_v the_o sick_a therefore_o also_o it_o be_v that_o whereas_o st._n james_n speak_v of_o the_o sick_a in_o general_n in_o what_o estate_n soever_o they_o be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n understand_v that_o they_o must_v be_v at_o the_o extremity_n before_o this_o unction_n be_v carry_v unto_o they_o and_o she_o never_o give_v it_o unto_o little_a child_n this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o in_o all_o thing_n even_o of_o the_o least_o moment_n she_o must_v invent_v or_o add_v something_o of_o her_o own_o if_o it_o be_v but_o only_o to_o show_v her_o authority_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n speak_v only_o one_o word_n here_o of_o marriage_n and_o he_o say_v nothing_o but_o what_o we_o will_v very_o easy_o consent_v unto_o we_o acknowledge_v as_o he_o do_v that_o marriage_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o sacred_a band_n of_o civil_a society_n but_o we_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o marriage_n be_v a_o true_a sacrament_n nor_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v permit_v unto_o they_o that_o be_v in_o order_n as_o they_o speak_v to_o marry_v as_o if_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o incompatibility_n betwixt_o two_o divers_a sacrament_n of_o the_o gospel_n neither_o last_o do_v we_o agree_v unto_o many_o other_o maxim_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v marriage_n whereof_o we_o do_v not_o find_v any_o tract_n in_o scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n but_o see_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n enter_v not_o upon_o these_o question_n we_o will_v forbear_v speak_v of_o they_o here_o we_o will_v only_o observe_v that_o the_o council_n can_v not_o better_v set_v forth_o the_o reason_n that_o it_o have_v to_o make_v so_o many_o decree_n and_o so_o many_o canon_n touch_v marriage_n which_o be_v nevertheless_o natural_o a_o civil_a contract_n than_o by_o the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o of_o these_o same_o canon_n which_o comprehend_v all_o the_o rest_n the_o first_o do_v pronounce_v anathema_n against_o all_o those_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o marriage_n be_v a_o true_a sacrament_n and_o the_o last_o against_o all_o those_o who_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o all_o cause_n concern_v marriage_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o these_o two_o canon_n be_v make_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o every_o one_o at_o the_o first_o sight_n may_v see_v the_o great_a consequence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o the_o great_a advantage_n which_o do_v arise_v unto_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n whether_o it_o be_v for_o the_o authority_n in_o examination_n of_o matrimonial_a cause_n or_o for_o the_o income_n of_o dispensation_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v take_v cognisance_n of_o cause_n matrimonial_a for_o the_o great_a advantage_n which_o accrue_v unto_o she_o thereby_o and_o to_o bring_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o she_o may_v have_v cognizance_n of_o they_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v marriage_n a_o sacrament_n as_o also_o she_o will_v have_v have_v cognizance_n of_o all_o other_o civil_a affair_n under_o pretext_n of_o the_o oath_n which_o be_v insert_v in_o contract_n if_o the_o just_a jealousy_n of_o the_o parliament_n of_o
church_n i_o most_o firm_o admit_v and_o embrace_v likewise_o i_o admit_v the_o holy_a scripture_n according_a to_o that_o sense_n which_o our_o holy_a mother_n the_o church_n ever_o do_v and_o do_v hold_v to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n neither_o will_v i_o receive_v or_o interpret_v it_o but_o according_a to_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n i_o profess_v also_o that_o there_o be_v seven_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a law_n institute_v by_o our_o lord_n 〈◊〉_d christ_n and_o necessary_a 〈…〉_o mankind_n though_o not_o 〈…〉_o person_n to_o wit_n baptism_n 〈…〉_o the_o eucharist_n penance_n extreme_a unction_n holy_a order_n and_o matrimony_n and_o that_o they_o do_v confer_v grace_n and_o of_o these_o ●●●t_a baptism_n confirmation_n and_o order_n without_o sacrilege_n can_v be_v repeat_v the_o receive_v and_o approve_a rite_n also_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o solemn_a administration_n of_o all_o the_o foresay_a sacrament_n i_o do_v receive_v and_o admit_v i_o do_v embrace_v and_o receive_v all_o and_o every_o point_n and_o point_n touch_v original_a sin_n and_o justification_n which_o have_v be_v define_v and_o declare_v in_o the_o holy_a council_n of_o trent_n i_o do_v in_o like_a manner_n profess_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o mass_n offer_v up_o to_o god_n a_o true_a proper_a and_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a and_o that_o in_o the_o most_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n after_o consecration_n there_o be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n together_o with_o the_o soul_n and_o divinity_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o bread_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n which_o conversion_n the_o catholic_n church_n call_v transubstantion_n i_o acknowledge_v likewise_o that_o under_o one_o kind_n only_o all_o and_o entire_a christ_n and_o a_o true_a sacrament_n be_v take_v i_o do_v constant_o hold_v there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n there_o detain_v be_v help_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o like_a manner_n that_o the_o saint_n reign_v with_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v venerate_v and_o call_v upon_o and_o that_o they_o offer_v up_o prayer_n to_o god_n for_o we_o and_o that_o their_o relic_n be_v to_o be_v have_v in_o veneration_n i_o do_v most_o steadfast_o affirm_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n always_o a_o virgin_n be_v to_o be_v have_v and_o keep_v and_o that_o due_a honour_n and_o veneration_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o they_o that_o the_o power_n of_o indulgence_n be_v leave_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o use_n of_o they_o be_v most_o wholesome_a to_o christian_a people_n i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a roman_a church_n i●_n mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n i_o do_v promise_n and_o swear_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n successor_n of_o st._n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o do_v likewise_o without_o doubt_v receive_v and_o profess_v all_o other_o matter_n that_o be_v deliver_v define_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o sacred_a canon_n and_o the_o ecumenical_a council_n and_o especial_o by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o i_o do_v likewise_o together_o condemn_v reject_v and_o anathematise_v all_o thing_n contrary_a and_o all_o whatsoever_o heresy_n condemn_v reject_v and_o anathematise_v by_o the_o church_n gospel_n here_o they_o lay_v their_o hand_n on_o the_o gospel_n i_o the_o same_o n._n do_v promise_n vow_n and_o swear_v that_o as_o far_o as_o lie_v in_o i_o i_o will_v take_v care_n that_o this_o self_n same_o true_a catholic_n faith_n out_o of_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v which_o at_o present_a of_o my_o own_o accord_n i_o profess_v and_o true_o hold_v by_o god_n help_n be_v most_o constant_o hold_v and_o confess_v by_o i_o whole_a and_o inviolate_a to_o the_o last_o breath_n of_o my_o life_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v hold_v teach_v and_o preach_v by_o all_o that_o be_v under_o i_o or_o those_o the_o care_n of_o who_o shall_v in_o my_o charge_n belong_v to_o i_o so_o god_n help_v i_o and_o these_o god_n holy_a gospel_n we_o will_v far_o that_o these_o present_a letter_n be_v read_v in_o our_o apostolic_a chancery_n according_a to_o the_o accustom_a manner_n and_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o know_v unto_o all_o that_o they_o be_v register_v in_o the_o roll_n thereof_o and_o that_o they_o be_v print_v and_o let_v no_o person_n whatsoever_o dare_v to_o infringe_v this_o declaration_n of_o our_o will_n and_o commandment_n or_o by_o bold_a presumption_n to_o offend_v against_o it_o and_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v presume_v to_o attempt_v it_o let_v he_o know_v that_o he_o incur_v the_o indignation_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o of_o his_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n dated_n at_o rome_n at_o st._n peter_n the_o thirteen_o day_n of_o november_n in_o the_o year_n of_o the_o incarnanation_n of_o our_o lord_n 1564._o and_o of_o our_o popedom_n the_o five_o fed._n cardinal_n caesius_n cae._n glorierius_n the_o stationer_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n the_o attestation_n of_o messieurs_n claude_n de_fw-fr l'angle_n daillé_n and_o allix_n show_v that_o they_o have_v see_v this_o answer_n and_o that_o they_o have_v not_o find_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o contrary_a to_o their_o religion_n a_o answer_n unto_o the_o book_n of_o monsieur_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n mounseur_fw-fr the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v too_o much_o justice_n to_o take_v ill_o the_o answer_v his_o book_n entice_v design_n of_o this_o trea_n entice_v on_o the_o contrary_n he_o seem_v rather_o to_o invite_v we_o to_o the_o same_o in_o term_n sufficient_o express_v 187_o page_n 187_o and_o beside_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o defence_n be_v a_o natural_a and_o favourable_a right_n especial_o when_o it_o concern_v a_o thing_n so_o dear_a as_o the_o interest_n of_o truth_n and_o religion_n ought_v to_o be_v 187_o page_n 187_o he_o only_o desire_v that_o in_o case_n a●_n one_o answer_v his_o treatise_n he_o will_v not_o undertake_v to_o refute_v the_o doctrine_n which_o 〈◊〉_d contain_v 188_o page_n 188_o nor_o examine_v the_o different_a way_n that_o the_o catholic_n divine_v have_v use_v 〈◊〉_d establish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n 〈◊〉_d trent_n nor_o the_o several_a consequence_n the_o particular_a doctor_n have_v draw_v thence_o 3._o page_n 3._o be_v thing_n that_o be_v not_o necessary_o nor_o universal_o receive_v 189_o page_n 189_o but_o that_o 〈◊〉_d will_v chief_o hold_v himself_o to_o three_o thing_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o faithful_o lay_v down_o i●_n his_o book_n as_o he_o believe_v it_o be_v or_o tha●_n he_o will_v show_v that_o this_o exposition_n do_v leave_v all_o objection_n in_o their_o force_n and_o all_o the_o difficulty_n whole_a and_o entire_a or_o last_o that_o it_o be_v make_v precise_o appear_v wherein_o his_o doctrine_n so_o explain_v do_v overthrow_v the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n of_o these_o three_o thing_n we_o will_v leave_v the_o first_o to_o be_v examine_v by_o those_o of_o his_o own_o communion_n because_o that_o be_v more_o proper_o their_o business_n and_o right_n than_o we_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o principal_o to_o consider_v if_o they_o will_v not_o be_v well_o content_v and_o if_o it_o will_v not_o be_v very_o advantageous_a to_o they_o to_o reduce_v their_o belief_n in_o all_o matter_n of_o controversy_n unto_o what_o be_v explain_v in_o that_o treatise_n and_o to_o lay_v aside_o all_o the_o consequence_n which_o their_o other_o doctor_n have_v draw_v from_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o the_o mean_n they_o have_v make_v use_n of_o to_o establish_v they_o as_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o which_o nevertheless_o do_v clog_n religion_n or_o do_v at_o least_o in_o part_n hinder_v a_o matter_n which_o be_v so_o desirable_a as_o the_o uniformity_n of_o worship_n and_o belief_n among_o christian_n shall_v be_v we_o will_v content_v ourselves_o to_o observe_v by_o the_o way_n several_a place_n where_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n use_v a_o art_n that_o be_v distant_a not_o only_o from_o the_o common_a belief_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o his_o communion_n but_o also_o from_o the_o term_n and_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o of_o the_o very_a council_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v discern_v wherein_o consist_v the_o sweetning_n that_o the_o bishop_n
with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o with_o fire_n be_v also_o take_v for_o a_o spiritual_a purification_n under_o the_o figure_n of_o fire_n and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o occasion_n itself_o on_o which_o jesus_n christ_n speak_v thus_o to_o nicodemus_n be_v but_o indeed_o a_o particular_a occasion_n where_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o appearance_n that_o our_o saviour_n have_v any_o thought_n neither_o express_o nor_o by_o consequence_n to_o establish_v the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n the_o second_o thing_n wherein_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n here_o recede_v from_o his_o natural_a equity_n be_v this_o that_o he_o will_v take_v a_o false_a and_o indirect_a advantage_n against_o we_o by_o what_o he_o say_v that_o the_o lutheran_n do_v believe_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o baptism_n for_o infant_n and_o that_o never_o any_o man_n before_o calvin_n dare_v open_o to_o call_v in_o question_n this_o truth_n it_o be_v so_o strong_o imprint_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o council_n itself_o do_v not_o impose_v this_o necessity_n so_o absolute_o as_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n it_o say_v not_o so_o positive_o as_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n that_o infant_n have_v not_o any_o part_n in_o the_o redemption_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o with_o jesus_n christ_n the_o council_n do_v not_o condemn_v those_o who_o say_v that_o baptism_n be_v not_o altogether_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n bapt._n sess_n 7._o de_fw-fr bapt._n can._n 5._o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la dixerit_fw-la baptismum_fw-la liberum_fw-la esse_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la necessarium_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la anathema_n sit_v heming_n in_o via_fw-la aquavitae_fw-la calixt_v de_fw-fr bapt._n co●●_n dieter_n de_fw-fr bapt._n and_o if_o it_o do_v that_o will_v not_o infer_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n it_o condemn_v only_o those_o who_o will_v have_v baptism_n indifferent_a or_o unnecessary_a as_o the_o council_n itself_o explain_v it_o which_o be_v very_o much_o different_a from_o this_o necessity_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n make_v so_o absolute_a and_o it_o be_v much_o to_o be_v admire_v that_o he_o who_o be_v natural_o incline_v to_o sweetness_n and_o who_o seem_v to_o remit_v somewhat_o upon_o other_o question_n do_v on_o the_o contrary_n discover_v more_o severity_n upon_o this_o point_n which_o yet_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o favourable_a further_o if_o he_o oppose_v the_o lutheran_n to_o we_o as_o b●ing_v of_o a_o contrary_a judgement_n to_o we_o in_o this_o point_n beside_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n ought_v not_o to_o impute_v unto_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o lutheran_n what_o be_v constant_o reject_v by_o the_o most_o eminent_a divine_n of_o their_o communion_n we_o will_v allege_v &_o produce_v against_o he_o the_o ethiopian_n and_o christian_n of_o st._n thomas_n which_o be_v very_o ancient_a church_n where_o at_o this_o day_n they_o do_v not_o baptise_v their_o child_n upon_o any_o account_n after_o account_n male_n 4●_n day_n female_n 80_o day_n after_o until_o whole_a month_n after_o their_o birth_n not_o to_o speak_v any_o thing_n here_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o tertullian_n who_o advise_v to_o defer_v baptism_n until_o year_n of_o discretion_n nor_o of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n of_o st._n ambrose_n of_o st._n austin_n of_o paulin_n bishop_n of_o nole_n and_o many_o other_o which_o be_v not_o baptize_v till_o far_o go_v in_o age_n as_o for_o calvin_n part_n to_o who_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n impute_v it_o to_o have_v be_v the_o first_o that_o deny_v this_o absolute_a necessity_n it_o be_v very_o easy_a to_o show_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n how_o much_o he_o be_v mistake_v in_o this_o matter_n not_o o●ely_o by_o what_o we_o have_v just_a now_o allege_v of_o those_o christian_a church_n of_o tertullian_n and_o of_o other_o who_o be_v name_v but_o also_o by_o hinemar_n archbishop_n of_o reims_n in_o the_o nine_o age_n and_o since_o by_o catharin_n gerson_n gabriel_n biel_n cardinal_n cajetan_n tilman_n de_fw-fr sigebert_n cassander_n and_o many_o other_o that_o be_v roman-catholic_n who_o have_v all_o deny_v this_o necessity_n before_o calvin_n for_o hin●mar_n do_v teach_v 572._o in_o ep._n 55._o cap._n 482._o pa._n 572._o that_o the_o faith_n of_o father_n and_o of_o godfather_n may_v serve_v for_o infant_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n who_o spirit_n blow_v where_o it_o list_v and_o all_o the_o other_o have_v also_o express_o declare_v themselves_o for_o the_o possibility_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o infant_n depart_v without_o baptism_n to_o conclude_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v here_o again_o recede_v from_o his_o natural_a equity_n when_o he_o say_v in_o term_n too_o severe_a 73._o pag._n 73._o that_o the_o pretend_a reformer_n be_v not_o afraid_a voluntary_o to_o let_v their_o child_n die_v like_o child_n of_o infidel_n without_o bear_v any_o badge_n of_o christianity_n and_o without_o have_v receive_v any_o grace_n if_o their_o death_n do_v precede_v the_o day_n of_o their_o public_a assembly_n we_o be_v very_o far_o from_o suffer_v willing_o our_o child_n to_o die_v without_o baptism_n contrary_a to_o what_o he_o say_v nothing_o be_v more_o against_o our_o will_n for_o though_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o baptism_n be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n by_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n such_o as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n no_o more_o than_o the_o participate_v of_o the_o eucharist_n yet_o we_o find_v very_o great_a comfort_n in_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n and_o suffer_v not_o that_o they_o be_v slight_v or_o neglect_v we_o do_v what_o we_o can_v possible_a to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o ordinary_a assembly_n by_o condescend_v to_o they_o who_o demand_v this_o comfort_n with_o great_a importunity_n but_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v for_o all_o that_o that_o the_o grace_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n be_v tie_v unto_o sensible_a thing_n nor_o unto_o the_o outward_a act_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o word_n that_o be_v pronounce_v and_o unto_o the_o exterior_a action_n that_o be_v do_v upon_o we_o as_o it_o have_v be_v before_o set_v forth_o and_o we_o not_o only_o believe_v that_o god_n can_v but_o that_o he_o will_v supply_v this_o defect_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o that_o holy_a spirit_n which_o blow_v where_o it_o list_v as_o hinemar_n cite_v it_o out_o of_o the_o gospel_n to_o conclude_v we_o believe_v as_o the_o prophet_n that_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o child_n as_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o child_n of_o believer_n be_v holy_a as_o we_o have_v already_o observe_v and_o that_o so_o to_o be_v bear_v and_o die_v in_o christianity_n be_v not_o to_o die_v in_o adam_n or_o out_o of_o the_o covenant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o for_o confirmation_n confirmation_n confirmation_n we_o do_v not_o only_o not_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v altogether_o necessary_a but_o we_o can_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o true_a sacrament_n institute_v by_o god_n and_o so_o far_o be_v we_o from_o be_v aone_a in_o this_o opinion_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n allege_v that_o we_o can_v make_v good_a the_o quite_o contrary_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o author_n even_o of_o his_o own_o communion_n 12._o zaga_n zabo_n alvares_n guido_n carme_n soto_n armachanus_fw-la gouvea_fw-mi jarric_n lib._n 6._o c._n 9_o &_o 12._o to_o wit_n the_o eastern_a church_n have_v not_o nor_o to_o this_o day_n have_v for_o the_o most_o part_n any_o knowledge_n of_o chrism_n or_o of_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n among_o the_o greek_n themselves_o who_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o chrism_n it_o be_v the_o priest_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n that_o give_v it_o with_o baptism_n as_o make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o baptism_n and_o by_o consequence_n on_o the_o contrary_a there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alone_o who_o have_v make_v confirmation_n to_o be_v a_o particular_a sacrament_n it_o be_v true_a that_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n lay_v their_o hand_n sometime_o upon_o the_o sick_a sometime_o upon_o the_o baptise_a and_o sometime_o upon_o they_o who_o they_o send_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o the_o same_o time_n communicate_v unto_o they_o extraordinary_a and_o miraculous_a grace_n but_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v not_o to_o speak_v proper_o any_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o the_o confirmation_n use_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o may_v ground_v it_o upon_o this_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o the_o use_n of_o chrism_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o oil_n with_o balm_n be_v a_o thing_n unknown_a in_o the_o first_o age_n we_o find_v not_o that_o either_o jesus_n christ_n or_o the_o apostle_n ever_o say_v go_v lay_v your_o hand_n upon_o
hu._n menard_n in_o conc._n regular_fw-la pa._n 564._o cardinal_n cajetan_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n james_n doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v agree_v they_o exhort_v we_o unto_o reconciliation_n &_o they_o in_o effect_n reconcile_v we_o they_o exhort_v we_o general_o to_o restore_v the_o good_n we_o do_v unjust_o retain_v and_o those_o who_o be_v honest_a and_o sufficient_a do_v thereupon_o real_o restore_v they_o 6._o even_o in_o health_n itself_o we_o be_v invite_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o wholesome_a advice_n and_o consolation_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o guide_n and_o those_o under_o their_o charge_n who_o be_v afflict_v with_o any_o considerable_a perplexity_n whether_o as_o to_o faith_n or_o as_o to_o any_o great_a sin_n whereunto_o they_o find_v themselves_o incline_v be_v to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o they_o and_o so_o real_o have_v 7._o to_o conclude_v upon_o occasion_n of_o any_o public_a sin_n which_o move_v we_o to_o enter_v upon_o this_o subject_n when_o any_o one_o have_v commit_v any_o crime_n or_o notorious_a sin_n whether_o it_o be_v for_o that_o he_o be_v bear_v according_a to_o we_o in_o a_o bad_a religion_n or_o that_o he_o have_v be_v so_o weak_a as_o to_o forsake_v the_o true_a religion_n or_o that_o he_o be_v convince_v to_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o first_o or_o second_o table_n or_o to_o have_v give_v scandal_n to_o his_o neighbour_n he_o be_v summon_v or_o he_o come_v first_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n before_o the_o assembly_n of_o minister_n and_o elder_n where_o he_o make_v a_o particular_a confession_n of_o his_o sin_n he_o be_v then_o severe_o censure_v according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n prayer_n be_v make_v with_o he_o and_o for_o he_o to_o obtain_v of_o god_n forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n if_o his_o sin_n be_v great_a he_o be_v interdict_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n to_o humble_v he_o if_o he_o have_v scandalize_v the_o whole_a church_n he_o be_v then_o enjoin_v to_o make_v a_o public_a confession_n before_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o when_o all_o this_o be_v do_v and_o that_o he_o have_v give_v evidence_n of_o his_o repentance_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n announce_v also_o unto_o he_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n but_o always_o under_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n repentance_n and_o a_o true_a amendment_n of_o life_n in_o this_o manner_n be_v it_o that_o the_o power_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v unto_o his_o minister_n be_v exercise_v among_o we_o which_o be_v what_o we_o call_v the_o discipline_n of_o our_o church_n thus_o far_o be_v it_o that_o we_o extend_v it_o in_o this_o regard_n and_o not_o any_o far_a to_o set_v up_o a_o tribunal_n for_o our_o guide_n wherein_o they_o shall_v exercise_v a_o absolute_a dominion_n over_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n those_o who_o be_v but_o the_o least_o verse_v in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n may_v easy_o see_v if_o this_o be_v not_o as_o mere_o as_o can_v be_v the_o ancient_a usage_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o for_o ordinary_a sinner_n or_o public_a offender_n except_o it_o be_v that_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o time_n have_v cause_v but_o too_o great_a a_o relaxation_n of_o the_o rigour_n of_o this_o discipline_n which_o thing_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o the_o censure_n and_o punishment_n be_v nothing_o near_o so_o grievous_a and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v and_o as_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n they_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o first_o establish_v of_o christianity_n for_o the_o better_a persuade_v the_o people_n of_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o which_o behalf_n the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o reproach_v we_o of_o that_o they_o very_o well_o know_v they_o have_v not_o any_o resemblance_n of_o this_o public_a penance_n of_o the_o ancient_n as_o have_v be_v show_v we_o have_v for_o they_o have_v change_v all_o into_o this_o other_o kind_n of_o penance_n or_o into_o this_o private_a confession_n to_o the_o priest_n even_o of_o sin_n which_o be_v most_o notorious_a and_o which_o give_v most_o scandal_n but_o this_o private_a confession_n add_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n be_v so_o necessary_a a_o curb_n of_o licentiousness_n so_o fruitful_a a_o spring_n of_o wise_a counsel_n so_o sensible_a a_o consolation_n of_o trouble_a soul_n when_o absolution_n be_v not_o only_o declare_v unto_o they_o in_o general_a term_n as_o the_o minister_n practice_n but_o that_o they_o be_v effectual_o absolve_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o jesus_n christ_n after_o a_o particular_a examination_n and_o with_o cognisance_n of_o the_o cause_n that_o we_o can_v believe_v that_o our_o adversary_n can_v behold_v the_o so_o great_a benefit_n hereof_o without_o regret_n for_o the_o loss_n of_o they_o and_o without_o some_o shame_n of_o a_o reformation_n that_o have_v take_v away_o a_o practice_n so_o wholesome_a and_o holy_a this_o be_v the_o second_o conceit_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v wrap_v up_o himself_o in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o be_v just_a now_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o we_o have_v take_v away_o this_o practice_n nor_o lose_v the_o benefit_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o comfort_n which_o may_v be_v thence_o expect_v we_o have_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a which_o be_v almost_o always_o in_o the_o abuse_n and_o excess_n of_o the_o best_a thing_n wherefore_o god_n be_v praise_v we_o have_v no_o cause_n of_o regret_n nor_o shame_n in_o this_o regard_n if_o the_o priest_n or_o the_o minister_n be_v our_o absolute_a judge_n if_o it_o be_v so_o with_o he_o that_o he_o have_v true_o the_o right_a or_o power_n to_o condemn_v or_o to_o absolve_v we_o it_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v in_o this_o case_n we_o ought_v to_o render_v he_o a_o exact_a account_n of_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o our_o life_n but_o it_o be_v god_n alone_o who_o be_v the_o true_a judge_n who_o know_v our_o heart_n and_o our_o most_o secret_a thought_n even_o when_o we_o say_v nothing_o unto_o he_o of_o they_o and_o as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o benefit_n and_o fruit_n of_o confession_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n think_v fit_a only_o to_o touch_v in_o general_a term_n as_o we_o be_v sincere_a &_o as_o there_o be_v but_o few_o doctrine_n so_o bad_a that_o have_v not_o some_o good_a in_o they_o in_o some_o regard_n we_o ingenuous_o acknowledge_v that_o private_a confession_n of_o sin_n may_v sometime_o produce_v some_o good_a effect_n either_o to_o cause_n restitution_n to_o be_v make_v of_o what_o be_v unjust_o detain_v or_o to_o beget_v a_o great_a shame_n in_o sinner_n for_o their_o miscarriage_n and_o sin_n therefore_o also_o it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o we_o be_v very_o far_o from_o condemn_v or_o reject_v all_o sort_n of_o confession_n we_o only_o say_v that_o we_o can_v sustain_v with_o good_a conscience_n this_o tribunal_n or_o rather_o this_o yoke_n which_o be_v impose_v upon_o conscience_n itself_o this_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o this_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o tell_v all_o a_o man_n sin_n by_o particular_n without_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o teach_v that_o the_o faithful_a can_v obtain_v pardon_n of_o their_o sin_n whatever_o bitter_a sorrow_n they_o feel_v for_o they_o and_o whatever_o firm_a belief_n they_o have_v in_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o even_o this_o also_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n teach_v 4._o sess_n 14_o de_fw-la sacram_fw-la paeni●_n cap._n 6._o can_n 4._o in_o sum_n in_o exchange_n of_o what_o benefit_n may_v accrue_v by_o the_o sacramental_a confession_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o call_v to_o witness_v the_o sincere_a person_n of_o her_o communion_n if_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o this_o confession_n be_v also_o the_o original_n of_o infinite_a evil_n if_o any_o shall_v not_o be_v please_v to_o agree_v hereunto_o we_o have_v the_o experience_n of_o all_o time_n on_o this_o matter_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o repentance_n their_o cassand_n art_n 11._o of_o his_o consult_v beatus_fw-la rhen._n in_o his_o preface_n upon_o tertullian_n book_n of_o repentance_n own_o author_n some_o of_o who_o do_v open_o enough_o acknowledge_v that_o thing_n be_v come_v to_o that_o pass_n that_o auricular_a confession_n such_o as_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rame_n can_v any_o long_o be_v of_o any_o good_a use_n in_o plain_a truth_n instead_o of_o be_v only_o a_o curb_n unto_o licentiousness_n man_n accustom_v themselves_o to_o sin_n upon_o the_o confidence_n they_o have_v that_o their_o sin_n shall_v be_v blot_v out_o by_o this_o ordinary_a and_o easy_a way_n of_o confession_n or_o by_o
pretend_v that_o these_o expression_n do_v suppose_v the_o real_a presence_n and_o that_o they_o can_v concord_n but_o by_o admit_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o come_v all_o to_o one_o thing_n and_o that_o it_o be_v by_o these_o expression_n that_o our_o reformer_n themselves_o approach_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v in_o this_o part_n of_o his_o treatise_n that_o he_o have_v labour_v most_o and_o conceive_v with_o great_a care_n as_o be_v the_o place_n where_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v most_o advantage_n but_o which_o at_o the_o bottom_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o heap_n of_o plausible_a pretext_n and_o unjust_a consequence_n and_o almost_o throughout_o play_v upon_o word_n the_o first_o of_o his_o objection_n be_v upon_o this_o expression_n of_o our_o catechism_n where_o we_o say_v that_o we_o do_v make_v no_o doubt_n ●t_a that_o jesus_n christ_n make_v we_o parta●s_n of_o his_o proper_a substance_n by_o unite_n us_o 〈◊〉_d himself_o in_o the_o same_o life_n and_o upon_o this_o other_o passage_n of_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n where_o it_o be_v say_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n that_o jesus_n christ_n do_v nourish_v and_o ●ivifie_v we_o with_o the_o proper_a substance_n of_o his_o body_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n it_o be_v a_o certain_a truth_n that_o the_o scripture_n never_o make_v use_v of_o this_o term_n of_o substance_n upon_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o first_o father_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o use_v it_o neither_o there_o be_v only_o some_o ancient_a doctor_n which_o have_v use_v it_o in_o divers_a sense_n sometime_o to_o express_v the_o matter_n or_o the_o essence_n itself_o of_o the_o thing_n and_o oftentimes_o also_o to_o signify_v the_o virtue_n baptism_n sunday_n 50._o and_o in_o the_o form_n of_o administer_a of_o baptism_n our_o catechism_n itself_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n say_v indifferent_o in_o two_o place_n the_o substance_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o baptism_n to_o signify_v the_o efficacy_n of_o it_o not_o any_o of_o the_o first_o age_n have_v say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n do_v give_v we_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o some_o less_o ancient_a have_v say_v that_o he_o nourish_v and_o vivify_v we_o by_o his_o substance_n or_o that_o he_o give_v we_o a_o live_a substance_n meaning_n a_o quicken_a virtue_n allude_v unto_o that_o mystical_a expression_n i_o be_o the_o live_a bread_n 6._o joh._n 6._o this_o bread_n be_v my_o flesh_n which_o i_o will_v give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n when_o the_o author_n of_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o our_o catechism_n use_v these_o sort_n of_o expression_n among_o many_o other_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o constrain_v so_o to_o do_v to_o conform_v themselves_o unto_o the_o scripture_n nor_o to_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n who_o use_v they_o not_o at_o all_o but_o they_o do_v it_o doubtless_o to_o accommodate_v themselves_o therein_o to_o the_o use_n which_o the_o latter_a time_n have_v bring_v in_o and_o to_o show_v in_o different_a term_n the_o truth_n of_o this_o spiritual_a communion_n which_o we_o believe_v we_o have_v with_o jesus_n christ_n so_o as_o they_o explain_v it_o in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o we_o will_v make_v no_o scruple_n here_o to_o add_v that_o it_o be_v not_o simple_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o oblige_v we_o to_o speak_v in_o such_o effectual_a term_n because_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o first_o aim_n of_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n be_v to_o recommend_v the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o it_o be_v also_o on_o one_o hand_n the_o tenor_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o general_n which_o do_v throughout_o inculcate_v a_o most_o intimate_a communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a with_o jesus_n christ_n say_v that_o we_o be_v flesh_n of_o his_o flesh_n eph●_n eph●_n and_o bone_n of_o his_o bone_n and_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o this_o sacrament_n which_o join_v to_o this_o divine_a word_n not_o only_o set_v forth_o this_o union_n in_o a_o most_o express_a manner_n but_o also_o give_v we_o a_o lively_a feel_n of_o it_o strengthener_n and_o confirm_v it_o by_o the_o grace_n with_o which_o god_n be_v please_v to_o accompany_v a_o action_n so_o holy_a but_o that_o which_o be_v communicate_v according_a to_o its_o proper_a substance_n say_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n 104._o pa._n 104._o aught_o to_o be_v real_o present_a and_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o make_v understand_v that_o a_o body_n which_o be_v only_o spiritual_o communicate_v unto_o we_o and_o by_o faith_n can_v be_v real_o communicate_v unto_o we_o and_o in_o its_o proper_a substance_n but_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o can_v make_v you_o understand_v it_o be_v the_o prejudice_n which_o you_o will_v not_o lay_v aside_o upon_o this_o subject_n of_o the_o eucharist_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v no_o real_a union_n nor_o participation_n if_o it_o be_v not_o physical_a that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o two_o body_n or_o two_o substance_n be_v not_o join_v or_o be_v not_o both_o together_o in_o one_o place_n which_o yet_o be_v a_o manifest_a error_n as_o if_o for_o example_n when_o we_o acquire_v a_o inheritance_n though_o we_o be_v distant_a from_o it_o it_o may_v not_o be_v say_v that_o not_o only_o the_o fruit_n and_o the_o revenue_n belong_v unto_o we_o but_o that_o the_o propriety_n the_o body_n the_o substance_n of_o the_o land_n in_o fine_a all_o that_o belong_v to_o it_o be_v we_o beside_o our_o catechism_n have_v already_o answer_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n objection_n in_o the_o article_n which_o immediate_o follow_v that_o which_o he_o object_n to_o we_o the_o minister_n demand_v 53._o sunday_n 53._o how_o can_v it_o he_o that_o jesus_n christ_n make_v we_o partaker_n of_o his_o proper_a substance_n to_o unite_v we_o unto_o himself_o see_v his_o body_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o we_o upon_o earth_n it_o be_v say_v the_o child_n by_o the_o incomprehensible_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o join_v thing_n that_o be_v asunder_o by_o the_o distance_n of_o place_n and_o 36._o and_o art_n 36._o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o same_o term_n will_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n dispute_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v effect_v a_o real_a and_o true_a union_n of_o we_o with_o jesus_n christ_n when_o we_o partake_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n notwithstanding_o the_o distance_n that_o there_o be_v betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o and_o who_o say_v a_o true_a and_o real_a union_n with_o jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o any_o thing_n less_o than_o to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o or_o to_o be_v nourish_v and_o vivify_v with_o his_o substance_n do_v either_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n himself_o better_a understand_v or_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o he_o shall_v make_v better_o understand_v the_o manner_n wherein_o he_o do_v believe_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o same_o spirit_n of_o god_n insomuch_o that_o the_o bread_n do_v cease_v to_o be_v bread_n and_o that_o the_o body_n of_o our_o divine_a saviour_n his_o proper_a body_n which_o be_v sit_v in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n be_v nevertheless_o upon_o earth_n in_o a_o thousand_o place_n at_o once_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n in_o less_o room_n than_o a_o point_n do_v take_v up_o in_o fine_a be_v it_o possible_a to_o make_v better_o understand_v this_o other_o manner_n which_o he_o believe_v that_o this_o holy_a body_n which_o only_o pass_v through_o his_o stomach_n do_v unite_v or_o rather_o be_v not_o unite_v with_o his_o proper_a body_n and_o soul_n the_o second_o objection_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n here_o make_v against_o we_o be_v upon_o another_o expression_n of_o our_o catechism_n 52._o sunday_n 52._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o though_o jesus_n christ_n be_v true_o communicate_v unto_o we_o by_o baptism_n and_o by_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v only_o in_o part_n and_o not_o full_o whence_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n infer_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v full_o give_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o exceed_a difference_n betwixt_o receive_v in_o part_n and_o receive_v full_o grant_v this_o see_v whereunto_o his_o argumentation_n amount_v if_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n 106._o pa._n 106._o jesus_n christ_n be_v full_o receive_v and_o in_o baptism_n and_o in_o the_o gospel_n but_o in_o part_n than_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o he_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v different_a from_o that_o in_o which_o he_o be_v
all_o this_o the_o same_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n speak_v in_o divers_a place_n against_o tradition_n without_o ever_o intimate_v that_o there_o be_v some_o good_a which_o be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o bad_a and_o in_o one_o only_a place_n which_o be_v that_o whereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n make_v mention_v 2.15_o mar._n 7.8_o 9_o 13._o colos_n 2.8_o 2_o thes_n 2.15_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v the_o thessalonian_o to_o hold_v fast_o the_o tradition_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v of_o he_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o mouth_n when_o he_o be_v present_a with_o they_o or_o by_o epistle_n which_o he_o have_v since_o write_v to_o they_o say_v not_o one_o word_n which_o intimate_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v teach_v they_o by_o mouth_n be_v different_a from_o those_o which_o he_o have_v write_v unto_o they_o but_o he_o give_v to_o understand_v all_o along_o that_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o gospel_n which_o he_o preach_v unto_o all_o to_o they_o who_o be_v present_a by_o voice_n and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v absent_a by_o write_v in_o sum_n whosoever_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n with_o any_o attention_n to_o read_v st._n paul_n two_o epistle_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o where_o he_o speak_v unto_o they_o of_o the_o instruction_n which_o he_o give_v they_o and_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o have_v preach_v the_o gospel_n unto_o they_o shall_v find_v there_o nothing_o at_o all_o no_o more_o than_o in_o the_o gospel_n itself_o which_o have_v the_o least_o resemblance_n to_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a to_o purgatory_n to_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n to_o the_o adoration_n of_o image_n nor_o in_o fine_a to_o any_o of_o the_o tradition_n which_o be_v in_o question_n betwixt_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n here_o cor._n de_fw-fr doct._n christ_n li._n 2._o c._n 9_o &_o li._n 3._o count_v lit_fw-fr petili_fw-la c._n 6._o hieron_n ad_fw-la hel._n vi_fw-la pa._n 315_o &_o 366._o chrysos_fw-la hono._n 3._o in_o 2._o ad_fw-la cor._n to_o strengthen_v ourselves_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o st._n austin_n and_o of_o several_a other_o father_n to_o prove_v what_o we_o have_v say_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v contain_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a either_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n or_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o action_n but_o beside_o that_o this_o be_v to_o engage_v in_o a_o particular_a controversy_n touch_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n which_o be_v not_o the_o design_n of_o this_o answer_n we_o think_v that_o among_o christian_n it_o be_v in_o some_o fort_n to_o prejudice_v the_o dignity_n and_o divinity_n of_o this_o same_o holy_a scripture_n to_o doubt_v that_o its_o proper_a light_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o make_v know_v its_o perfection_n only_o let_v we_o see_v what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n produce_v for_o the_o unwritten_a word_n jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o have_v found_v his_o church_n upon_o preach_v 158._o pa._n 158._o the_o unwritten_a word_n be_v the_o first_o rule_n of_o christianity_n and_o when_o thereto_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v add_v this_o word_n do_v not_o thereby_o lose_v its_o authority_n we_o must_v observe_v here_o at_o first_o that_o this_o be_v to_o speak_v in_o some_o sort_n improper_o to_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n found_v the_o church_n upon_o preach_v and_o not_o rather_o by_o preach_v preach_v be_v a_o mean_n and_o not_o a_o foundation_n the_o mean_n may_v cease_v the_o foundation_n ought_v to_o be_v durable_a and_o no_o more_o be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o unwritten_a word_n be_v the_o first_o rule_n of_o christianity_n it_o be_v the_o scripture_n itself_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n which_o be_v the_o first_o and_o the_o elder_a rule_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n it_o be_v the_o old_a testament_n that_o not_o only_o contain_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v the_o permanent_a and_o unchangeable_a rule_n of_o our_o duty_n as_o well_o towards_o god_n as_o towards_o man_n but_o likewise_o all_o the_o figure_n all_o the_o promise_n and_o all_o the_o prophecy_n touch_v the_o messiah_n the_o time_n and_o the_o place_n of_o his_o birth_n and_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o his_o death_n the_o gospel_n as_o all_o the_o world_n know_v be_v not_o the_o abrogate_a but_o the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o we_o see_v that_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n ground_v their_o preach_n upon_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n jesus_n christ_n continual_o refer_v the_o jew_n to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n it_o be_v write_v say_v he_o in_o your_o law_n etc._n etc._n 1._o joh._n 5.39_o &_o 46._o rom._n 1._o search_v the_o scripture_n diligent_o for_o in_o they_o you_o think_v you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n to_o the_o roman_n paul_n a_o servant_n of_o jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n separate_v unto_o the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v promise_v by_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n concern_v his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n etc._n etc._n who_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o so_o he_o begin_v his_o very_a epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n god_n who_o at_o sundry_a time_n speak_v unto_o the_o father_n by_o the_o prophet_n etc._n etc._n in_o fine_a his_o first_o chapter_n and_o the_o whole_a epistle_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o one_o citation_n of_o exodus_fw-la of_o chronicle_n of_o samuel_n job_n psalm_n and_o the_o other_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n it_o be_v beside_o a_o very_a improper_a manner_n of_o speak_v to_o say_v that_o when_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v join_v unto_o the_o unwritten_a word_n this_o word_n for_o all_o that_o do_v not_o thereby_o lose_v its_o authority_n as_o if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n such_o as_o we_o have_v it_o now_o in_o writing_n be_v a_o accessary_a or_o be_v a_o thing_n different_a from_o that_o unto_o which_o they_o pretend_v it_o be_v join_v or_o that_o that_o which_o be_v not_o write_v be_v more_o considerable_a than_o that_o which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o sacred_a book_n for_o this_o expression_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v join_v to_o the_o unwritten_a word_n suggest_v all_o these_o imagination_n in_o stead_n of_o say_v the_o thing_n proper_o as_o it_o be_v he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o unwritten_a word_n have_v be_v put_v into_o writing_n or_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v succeed_v preach_v this_o divine_a word_n not_o only_o not_o lose_v its_o authority_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_n be_v corroborate_v in_o that_o it_o do_v not_o any_o long_o depend_v on_o the_o memory_n nor_o the_o will_n of_o man_n natural_o subject_a unto_o error_n for_o upon_o the_o main_a the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n pretend_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n contain_v only_o the_o lesser_a part_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a tradition_n do_v contain_v the_o principal_a part_n at_o least_o his_o pretence_n be_v that_o there_o may_v be_v some_o particular_a doctrine_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v but_o by_o tradition_n which_o ought_v not_o for_o their_o not_o be_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o to_o lose_v their_o authority_n as_o for_o any_o thing_n else_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o little_a firm_a to_o their_o principle_n of_o tradition_n or_o at_o least_o they_o so_o well_o acknowledge_v that_o tradition_n can_v go_v equal_a with_o scripture_n though_o the_o council_n have_v be_v please_v to_o determine_v the_o contrary_a that_o when_o they_o be_v press_v touch_v particular_a tradition_n which_o be_v in_o question_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o there_o be_v scarce_o one_o but_o they_o endeavour_v to_o support_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o interpret_n it_o in_o their_o sense_n or_o by_o the_o consequence_n which_o they_o draw_v thence_o when_o they_o treat_v of_o tradition_n in_o general_n they_o maintain_v it_o with_o excess_n compare_v it_o to_o scripture_n as_o if_o it_o go_v through_o all_o religion_n and_o when_o they_o treat_v of_o their_o doctrine_n in_o particular_a they_o will_v make_v the_o world_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o one_o among_o they_o which_o be_v not_o found_v on_o the_o very_a scripture_n but_o if_o we_o will_v know_v nevertheless_o how_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n prove_v that_o the_o particular_a ponit_v of_o tradition_n be_v the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n unwritten_a it_o may_v be_v at_o first_o we_o will_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n some_o author_n either_o of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o
authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o they_o pretend_v can_v err_v behold_v therefore_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n argument_n overthrow_v in_o all_o its_o part_n see_v that_o the_o maxim_n which_o he_o lay_v down_o be_v not_o true_a which_o be_v that_o all_o the_o doctrine_n embrace_v by_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n whereof_o the_o first_o beginning_n can_v be_v show_v proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o the_o application_n which_o he_o do_v make_v be_v less_o true_a which_o be_v that_o all_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v doctrine_n embrace_v by_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n without_o possibility_n of_o show_v their_o beginning_n and_o by_o consequence_n this_o conclusion_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n or_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n far_o from_o be_v true_a and_o orthodox_n be_v a_o very_a strange_a principle_n that_o we_o ought_v to_o receive_v the_o tradition_n even_o those_o which_o do_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o the_o same_o respect_n and_o the_o same_o submission_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n church_n xix_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n after_o tradition_n follow_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v not_o clear_o explain_v wherein_o this_o authority_n consist_v nor_o what_o he_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n which_o shall_v have_v this_o authority_n whether_o this_o authority_n shall_v have_v any_o bound_n or_o whether_o it_o shall_v have_v none_o or_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n with_o the_o council_n or_o without_o the_o council_n or_o the_o council_n alone_o in_o which_o this_o authority_n do_v reside_v for_o we_o also_o have_v our_o church_n and_o our_o governor_n and_o we_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o only_o keep_v order_n but_o all_o that_o do_v conduce_v for_o the_o maintain_n of_o unity_n and_o concord_n and_o the_o question_n here_o as_o elsewhere_o be_v oftentimes_o but_o of_o the_o more_o or_o less_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v in_o this_o case_n be_v reducible_a to_o four_o principal_a proposition_n the_o first_o that_o it_o can_v be_v but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o we_o receive_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o second_o that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o church_n that_o we_o learn_v tradition_n and_o by_o tradition_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o three_o that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n and_o her_o pastor_n assemble_v which_o shall_v determine_v controversy_n that_o divide_v the_o faithful_a and_o that_o when_o once_o they_o have_v resolve_v any_o matter_n we_o ought_v to_o submit_v unto_o their_o decision_n without_o examine_v anew_o that_o which_o they_o have_v resolve_v the_o four_o and_o last_o that_o this_o authority_n be_v so_o necessary_a that_o after_o have_v deny_v it_o we_o have_v be_v force_v to_o establish_v it_o among_o we_o by_o our_o discipline_n by_o the_o act_n of_o our_o synod_n and_o by_o our_o practice_n in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o faith_n itself_o as_o to_o the_o first_o we_o agree_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n that_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v the_o guardian_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o as_o she_o have_v receive_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n from_o the_o jewish_a church_n so_o it_o be_v from_o the_o chirstian_a church_n that_o the_o faithful_a receive_v all_o the_o scripture_n as_o well_o of_o the_o old_a as_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o even_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o lawful_a reason_n which_o at_o first_o make_v we_o look_v upon_o the_o scripture_n as_o a_o revelation_n from_o heaven_n but_o we_o do_v deny_v not_o only_o that_o it_o be_v mere_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o it_o be_v principal_o by_o her_o authority_n that_o we_o receive_v the_o scripture_n as_o the_o divine_a word_n the_o scripture_n be_v full_a of_o testimony_n which_o itself_o give_v of_o its_o divinity_n and_o of_o the_o efficacious_a power_n which_o it_o have_v upon_o heart_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o be_v indeed_o somewhat_o injurious_a to_o this_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o its_o efficacy_n and_o somewhat_o contradictory_n when_o it_o be_v contend_v that_o a_o matter_n divine_a shall_v not_o be_v receive_v but_o by_o dependence_n upon_o a_o humane_a authority_n it_o be_v as_o if_o one_o will_v say_v that_o it_o be_v yet_o at_o this_o day_n only_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n that_o christian_n have_v receive_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n because_o it_o be_v by_o her_o hand_n that_o we_o have_v receive_v they_o though_o upon_o the_o whole_a the_o authority_n of_o this_o peopel_n choose_v of_o god_n may_v be_v a_o reasonable_a ground_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o scripture_n truth_n have_v its_o proper_a character_n even_o in_o humane_a matter_n which_o make_v we_o acknowledge_v it_o for_o its_o self_n when_o once_o it_o be_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n and_o not_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o who_o propose_v it_o to_o we_o by_o great_a reason_n heavenly_a truth_n like_o the_o sun_n manifest_v themselves_o by_o their_o proper_a splendour_n it_o be_v a_o common_a speech_n upon_o this_o subject_n that_o a_o man_n asleep_a be_v tell_v the_o sun_n be_v up_o present_o believe_v it_o be_v day_n upon_o what_o be_v tell_v he_o but_o when_o once_o he_o see_v it_o be_v day_n he_o believe_v it_o not_o any_o long_o because_o he_o be_v tell_v so_o but_o because_o he_o see_v it_o and_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v any_o long_a that_o it_o be_v tell_v he_o so_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v as_o clear_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o it_o be_v day_n when_o the_o sun_n be_v above_o our_o horizon_n and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n give_v to_o understand_v in_o term_n positive_a enough_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o we_o that_o whatever_o we_o say_v he_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v principal_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 16._o pag._n 16._o that_o determine_v we_o to_o reverence_v as_o divine_a book_n the_o song_n of_o song_n which_o have_v so_o few_o sensible_a mark_n of_o prophetical_a inspiration_n the_o epistle_n of_o st._n james_n which_o luther_n reject_v and_o that_o of_o st._n judas_n which_o may_v be_v suspect_v by_o reason_n of_o some_o apocryphal_a book_n which_o be_v therein_o allege_v but_o how_o dare_v any_o man_n rebate_v or_o decry_v as_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v the_o brightness_n and_o force_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n why_o say_v he_o absolute_o that_o the_o song_n of_o song_n have_v so_o few_o mark_n of_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o to_o what_o end_n here_o again_o propose_v he_o scruple_n against_o this_o song_n and_o against_o the_o two_o epistle_n of_o st._n james_n and_o st._n judas_n which_o we_o look_v upon_o both_o in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o communion_n as_o sacred_a book_n and_o that_o without_o so_o much_o as_o allege_v the_o reason_n which_o have_v determine_v as_o well_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o we_o to_o receive_v these_o write_n as_o canonical_a for_o will_v any_o say_v that_o if_o these_o write_n have_v not_o have_v any_o character_n of_o divinity_n the_o sole_a approbation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v give_v they_o 〈◊〉_d light_n which_o they_o have_v not_o of_o themselves_o for_o our_o part_n 3.16_o 2_o tim._n 3.16_o we_o say_v with_o the_o apostle_n that_o all_o scripture_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n and_o if_o all_o man_n do_v not_o look_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n or_o with_o the_o same_o sentiment_n it_o be_v not_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o variety_n and_o weakness_n of_o the_o humane_a spirit_n and_o the_o wise_a and_o free_a dispensation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o blow_v where_o it_o will_v and_o as_o it_o will_n a_o evident_a proof_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o determine_v those_o of_o our_o communion_n to_o reverence_v the_o scripture_n and_o these_o three_o book_n particular_o as_o canonical_a but_o that_o it_o be_v their_o own_o proper_a character_n and_o the_o grace_n which_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n give_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v this_o character_n be_v that_o it_o be_v well_o know_v there_o be_v some_o other_o as_o toby_n judith_n wisdom_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la and_o the_o two_o first_o book_n of_o maccabee_n etc._n etc._n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n receive_v as_o canonical_a which_o
we_o receive_v not_o as_o such_o and_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o do_v receive_v the_o epistle_n of_o st._n james_n which_o the_o lutheran_n receive_v not_o at_o least_o all_o of_o they_o as_o we_o do_v whatever_o conformity_n there_o may_v be_v in_o other_o thing_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o again_o as_o a_o proof_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n which_o determine_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o of_o we_o to_o receive_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o canonical_a we_o may_v take_v this_o that_o at_o this_o time_n the_o jew_n not_o receive_n for_o such_o all_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n receive_v she_o do_v not_o think_v herself_o bind_v to_o acquiesce_v in_o their_o judgement_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n second_o proposition_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v in_o a_o manner_n whole_o on_o the_o former_a for_o he_o say_v that_o as_o we_o receive_v the_o scripture_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o church_n so_o we_o learn_v tradition_n of_o she_o and_o by_o mean_n of_o tradition_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o good_a time_n let_v the_o church_n then_o be_v the_o guardian_n of_o tradition_n as_o she_o be_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o let_v she_o make_v use_n of_o tradition_n either_o for_o order_n and_o discipline_n to_o facilitate_v the_o understanding_n of_o scripture_n but_o let_v she_o not_o make_v thereof_o a_o title_n to_o impose_v upon_o we_o worship_n or_o doctrine_n which_o do_v not_o accord_v with_o the_o scripture_n or_o to_o make_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o depend_v absolute_o upon_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o receive_v the_o old_a testament_n from_o the_o jew_n the_o church_n do_v not_o tie_v herself_o blind_o to_o receive_v their_o tradition_n which_o overthrow_v the_o law_n nor_o their_o interpretation_n when_o it_o do_v not_o accord_n with_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o prophet_n error_n as_o vice_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o extreme_n we_o owe_v respect_n teachableness_n and_o submission_n unto_o all_o those_o who_o god_n set_v over_o we_o to_o instruct_v we_o this_o be_v not_o contest_v but_o this_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o change_v this_o submission_n into_o a_o voluntary_a blindness_n faith_n be_v a_o gift_n of_o god_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o change_v nor_o force_v the_o use_n of_o the_o exterior_a mean_n which_o god_n employ_v to_o work_v it_o in_o our_o heart_n but_o we_o ought_v to_o use_v they_o according_a to_o his_o intention_n with_o a_o spirit_n of_o sweetness_n and_o of_o charity_n to_o persuade_v and_o not_o to_o constrain_v otherwise_o a_o blind_a submission_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o submission_n but_o a_o spirit_n of_o servitude_n very_o unworthy_a of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o to_o require_v such_o a_o submission_n by_o what_o name_n soever_o it_o be_v call_v be_v to_o make_v a_o outward_a society_n of_o body_n of_o interest_n and_o appearance_n and_o not_o at_o all_o a_o true_a communion_n of_o spirit_n and_o of_o judgement_n 165._o pa_n 162._o pa._n 165._o the_o church_n say_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v profess_v that_o she_o say_v nothing_o now_o of_o herself_o that_o she_o invent_v not_o any_o thing_n anew_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o elsewhere_o very_o far_o from_o intend_v to_o render_v herself_o mistress_n of_o her_o faith_n as_o her_o adversary_n accuse_v she_o she_o have_v do_v what_o she_o can_v to_o bind_v herself_o and_o that_o the_o mean_n of_o innovation_n may_v be_v take_v away_o see_v she_o not_o only_o submit_v to_o the_o scripture_n but_o to_o banish_v for_o ever_o those_o arbitrary_a interpretation_n which_o make_v man_n thought_n to_o pass_v for_o scripture_n she_o have_v bind_v herself_o to_o understand_v they_o as_o to_o what_o regard_v faith_n and_o manner_n according_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n from_o which_o she_o profess_v never_o to_o depart_v declare_v in_o all_o the_o council_n and_o in_o all_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n which_o she_o have_v publish_v that_o she_o receive_v not_o any_o doctrine_n which_o be_v not_o conformable_a unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o all_o the_o forego_n age_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v well_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n profess_v that_o she_o invent_v not_o any_o thing_n for_o where_o be_v the_o innovatour_n which_o do_v not_o profess_v the_o same_o thing_n but_o upon_o the_o main_a be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o latter_a council_n have_v always_o exact_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n or_o of_o the_o very_a precede_a council_n for_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o transubstantiation_n of_o worship_v the_o host_n and_o of_o private_a mass_n which_o according_a to_o we_o be_v doctrine_n and_o worship_n unknown_a at_o least_o in_o the_o eight_o first_o age_n because_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o agree_v to_o it_o it_o have_v already_o be_v make_v appear_v in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n be_v forbid_v by_o the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o francfort_n and_o that_o the_o same_o worship_n have_v be_v establish_v or_o maintain_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o in_o the_o last_o place_n by_o that_o of_o trent_n it_o bathe_v also_o be_v show_v upon_o the_o article_n of_o purgatory_n that_o that_o doctrine_n with_o all_o its_o consequence_n be_v put_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o opinion_n which_o many_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o age_n have_v that_o after_o death_n the_o soul_n do_v sleep_v or_o do_v refresh_v themselves_o in_o a_o place_n separate_v from_o heaven_n the_o case_n be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o auricular_a confesssion_n and_o of_o indulgence_n which_o have_v succeed_v to_o the_o practice_n of_o public_a penance_n and_o general_o as_o to_o all_o the_o doctrine_n and_o all_o the_o practice_n of_o which_o we_o find_v no_o footstep_n in_o the_o father_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n nor_o in_o the_o first_o council_n and_o which_o we_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v add_v at_o several_a time_n unto_o the_o doctrine_n and_o institution_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n and_o here_o to_o instance_n yet_o in_o two_o example_n of_o alteration_n in_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n which_o be_v quite_o out_o of_o all_o question_n have_v not_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n take_v for_o the_o rule_n of_o his_o exposition_n abrogate_a the_o doctrine_n and_o use_n of_o give_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o little_a child_n of_o which_o we_o have_v already_o speak_v have_v it_o not_o also_o declare_v in_o express_a term_n for_o confirm_v the_o take_n away_o the_o cup_n which_o be_v before_o ordain_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n that_o therein_o little_a weight_n can_v be_v lay_v on_o the_o father_n for_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n so_o the_o council_n decide_v to_o allege_v the_o six_o of_o st._n john_n for_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n 2._o sess_n 21._o the_o come_v cap._n 2._o what_o way_n soever_o say_v the_o council_n it_o be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o sundry_a interpretation_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n we_o will_v not_o here_o examine_v whether_o all_o these_o divers_a change_n be_v for_o the_o better_a or_o worse_o because_o it_o have_v be_v already_o do_v heretofore_o and_o because_o we_o treat_v not_o here_o of_o the_o right_n but_o only_o of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v aver_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v bind_v herself_o that_o she_o have_v take_v away_o the_o mean_n of_o innovate_a that_o she_o submit_v herself_o through_o all_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o that_o she_o do_v not_o receive_v any_o doctrine_n which_o be_v not_o conformable_a unto_o that_o of_o precedent_a age_n to_o conclude_v these_o exposition_n seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o so_o well_o assure_v of_o her_o infallibility_n but_o that_o it_o have_v be_v acknowledge_v she_o have_v need_n to_o be_v secure_v against_o herself_o by_o tie_v up_o her_o hand_n and_o take_v away_o the_o mean_n of_o innovation_n and_o nevertheless_o if_o we_o will_v be_v a_o little_a inform_v by_o themselves_o what_o have_v be_v the_o success_n of_o all_o this_o precaution_n let_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o last_o five_o or_o six_o century_n be_v only_o compare_v in_o general_a with_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o three_o first_o and_o even_o with_o the_o follow_a age_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n with_o they_o that_o go_v before_o it_o without_o have_v any_o regard_n if_o they_o please_v to_o our_o
that_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o abolish_n the_o episcopal_a government_n which_o be_v in_o force_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n impute_v to_o we_o that_o our_o church_n maintain_v as_o they_o do_v a_o holy_a union_n betwixt_o themselves_o live_v in_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o simplicity_n under_o the_o governance_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o synod_n be_v a_o true_a image_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n of_o corinth_n of_o ephesus_n of_o galatia_n of_o the_o colossian_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o and_o of_o rome_n itself_o all_o found_v by_o the_o apostle_n affect_v not_o at_o all_o any_o superiority_n one_o over_o the_o other_o but_o all_o be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o unite_v by_o the_o bond_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o same_o charity_n under_o the_o governance_n of_o the_o same_o apostle_n and_o under_o one_o sole_a spiritual_a head_n jesus_n christ_n the_o word_n bishop_n as_o it_o be_v know_v signify_v only_o a_o overseer_n and_o no_o more_o than_o that_o of_o a_o pastor_n or_o minister_n the_o apostle_n be_v indifferent_o term_v one_o and_o the_o other_o it_o be_v know_v that_o in_o germany_n and_o england_n the_o name_n of_o bishop_n be_v retain_v and_o a_o kind_n of_o hierarchy_n which_o we_o do_v not_o disapprove_v of_o be_v moderate_a as_o it_o be_v and_o in_o fine_a god_n be_v our_o witness_n that_o we_o love_v peace_n and_o union_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n de-fsires_a but_o a_o true_a union_n of_o heart_n and_o judgement_n with_o knowledge_n and_o as_o god_n himself_o have_v command_v that_o we_o shall_v love_v peace_n with_o truth_n finis_fw-la a_o table_n of_o the_o chief_a point_n the_o first_o part_n i._o the_o design_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n treatise_n page_n 50._o ii_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n be_v first_o general_a proposition_n that_o those_o of_o the_o pretend_a reform_a religion_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v embrace_v all_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n page_n 58._o iii_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n second_o general_a proposition_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v teach_v that_o religious_a worship_n be_v terminate_v on_o god_n only_o pag._n 69._o second_o part_n iv_o of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n pag._n 67._o v._o of_o image_n and_o relic_n pag._n 109._o third_z part_n vi_o of_o justification_n pag._n 134._o vii_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o work_v pag._n 153._o viii_o of_o satisfaction_n purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n pag._n 156._o four_o part_n ix_o of_o the_o sacrament_n pag._n 171._o baptism_n pag._n 179._o confirmation_n pag._n 191._o pennance_n and_o sacramental_a confession_n pag._n 195._o extreme_a unction_n pag._n 213._o marriage_n pag._n 217._o order_n pag._n 219._o five_o part_n x._o of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n understand_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n pag._n 221_o xi_o a_o explication_n of_o these_o word_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o pa._n 249._o xii_o the_o exposition_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n make_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o of_o the_o reform_a religion_n upon_o the_o reality_n pag._n 261._o xiii_o of_o transubstantiation_n of_o adoration_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o sign_n pag._n 308._o fourteen_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n p._n 324._o xv._o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n pag._n 327._o xvi_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n reflection_n upon_o the_o precedent_a doctrine_n pa._n 332._o xvii_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n pa._n 55._o sixth_z part_n xviii_o of_o tradition_n or_o the_o word_n write_v and_o the_o word_n unwritten_a pag_n 355._o xix_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 370_o xx._n the_o judgement_n of_o those_o of_o the_o p._n r._n rel._n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n pag._n 389_o xxi_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a chair_n and_o of_o episcopacy_n pa._n 426._o finis_fw-la a_o note_n on_o line_n 17._o pag_n 38._o because_o the_o roman_a creed_n do_v not_o use_v genitum_fw-la twice_o but_o unigenitum_fw-la &_o natum_fw-la i_o do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o render_v genitum_fw-la and_o natum_fw-la b●th_v by_o one_o english_a word_n nor_o yet_o to_o render_v ex_fw-la patre_fw-la natum_fw-la bear_v of_o the_o father_n for_o we_o say_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n nor_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n that_o be_v say_v proper_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o therefore_o have_v say_v bring_v forth_o against_o which_o if_o any_o take_v exception_n i_o declare_v let_v the_o roman_a church_n mean_v what_o she_o will_v by_o natum_fw-la i_o mean_v the_o same_o by_o bring_v forth_o for_o i_o mean_v to_o express_v her_o latin_a word_n by_o english_a once_o as_o strict_o answer_v as_o i_o can_v indeed_o in_o so_o great_a a_o mystery_n all_o language_n must_v needs_o be_v improper_a errata_fw-la insigniora_fw-la pag_n 11._o l_o 23._o deal_n that_o p._n 25._o l._n 12._o it_o league_n they_o p._n 32._o l._n 11._o d._n that_o p._n 89._o l._n 5._o leg_n that_o it_o be_v p._n 132._o l._n penult_n fasten_v lege_fw-la soften_v p._n 138._o l._n 28._o leg_n the_o error_n p_o 157._o l._n 11._o for_o leg_n before_o p._n 158._o l_o 21._o del_o not_o p_o 182._o l._n ult_n lege_fw-la in_o which_o p._n 274._o l_o 4._o leg_n this_o death_n p_o 279._o l_o 20._o and_o it_o be_v also_o leg_n but_o it_o be_v
that_o we_o partake_v of_o jesus_n christ_n very_o real_o indeed_o but_o spiritual_o nevertheless_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n correct_v the_o term_n of_o real_a presence_n which_o he_o impute_v unto_o we_o leave_v the_o same_o consequence_n which_o he_o have_v seem_v upon_o this_o idea_n prejudging_a that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a participation_n ought_v to_o have_v the_o same_o effect_n as_o if_o we_o believe_v the_o presence_n itself_o this_o be_v call_v to_o take_v away_o the_o foundation_n and_o leave_v the_o building_n in_o the_o air_n or_o at_o best_o but_o to_o underprop_v it_o by_o put_v in_o some_o other_o support_n in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o foundation_n 13._o in_o the_o first_o among_o the_o many_o consequence_n that_o he_o draw_v from_o our_o believe_v a_o real_a participation_n after_o have_v say_v that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o beside_o the_o spiritual_a communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n etc._n etc._n we_o must_v admit_v of_o a_o real_a communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o same_o saviour_n 100_o pag._n 100_o he_o conclude_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v be_v satisfy_v will_v we_o make_v this_o confession_n which_o be_v of_o very_o great_a consequence_n because_o that_o this_o conclusion_n do_v free_v we_o from_o transubstantiation_n and_o shelter_v the_o lutheran_n that_o believe_v the_o reality_n in_o the_o latter_a some_o other_o consideration_n make_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n stifle_v this_o opinion_n 112._o pa._n 112._o and_o put_v another_o altogether_o different_a in_o the_o place_n they_o will_v never_o say_v he_o explain_v this_o truth_n in_o any_o the_o least_o solid_a manner_n if_o they_o do_v not_o return_v unto_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n 109_o pag._n 109_o 14._o in_o the_o first_o the_o word_n transubstantiation_n be_v see_v in_o the_o margin_n in_o form_n of_o a_o title_n or_o article_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o last_o to_o mark_v out_o the_o matter_n of_o controversy_n treat_v of_o in_o that_o place_n but_o throughout_o the_o exposition_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o any_o place_n of_o the_o article_n nor_o the_o term_n of_o transubstantiation_n nor_o this_o proposition_n that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o latter_a 124_o pag_n 124_o after_o these_o word_n the_o true_a body_n and_o the_o true_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o have_v add_v into_o which_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v change_v which_o be_v that_o that_o be_v call_v transubstantiation_n 115._o pag._n 115._o 15._o in_o the_o first_o speak_v of_o the_o mass_n he_o conclude_v only_o that_o it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n which_o imply_v also_o that_o one_o may_v safe_o forbear_v give_v it_o that_o name_n in_o the_o latter_a he_o change_v this_o conclusion_n into_o another_o far_a different_a for_o he_o affirm_v strong_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o want_v in_o the_o mass_n to_o be_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n which_o yet_o be_v two_o consequence_n very_o different_a to_o be_v draw_v from_o one_o doctrine_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n propose_v in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o prove_v that_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n do_v prove_v no_o more_o than_o that_o it_o may_v reasonable_o be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n 16._o in_o the_o first_o 132_o p_o 132_o treat_v of_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o who_o be_v call_v lutheran_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n speak_v general_o of_o the_o whole_a party_n that_o they_o reject_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v true_a in_o the_o latter_a 148._o pag._n 148._o he_o reduce_v this_o general_a proposition_n unto_o a_o particular_a one_o which_o destroy_v the_o former_a for_o he_o only_o say_v that_o some_o lutheran_n reject_v the_o adoration_n without_o the_o appearance_n of_o any_o ground_n which_o shall_v oblige_v he_o to_o the_o make_v such_o restriction_n 17._o in_o the_o first_o 113._o pag._n 113._o he_o draw_v this_o consequence_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n that_o he_o that_o can_v endure_v the_o reality_n which_o say_v he_o be_v the_o most_o important_a and_o most_o difficult_a point_n may_v easy_o digest_v the_o rest_n in_o the_o latter_a he_o bethink_v himself_o that_o this_o rest_n comprehend_v transubstantiation_n adoration_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o take_v away_o the_o cup_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o thing_n so_o easy_o believe_v wherefore_o he_o speak_v a_o little_o slack_a that_o endure_v the_o reality_n we_o ought_v also_o to_o endure_v the_o rest_n 165._o pag._n 165._o 18._o in_o the_o first_o touch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a chair_n he_o say_v that_o their_o profession_n of_o faith_n do_v oblige_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o mistress_n and_o to_o tender_v true_a obedience_n unto_o the_o pope_n as_o sovereign_n in_o the_o latter_a he_o wrap_v up_o this_o sovereign_a power_n in_o more_o general_a term_n which_o conclude_v nothing_o positive_o we_o acknowledge_v say_v he_o this_o sovereignty_n speak_v of_o st._n peter_n in_o his_o successor_n unto_o who_o be_v due_a for_o this_o reason_n the_o submission_n and_o obedience_n that_o the_o holy_a council_n and_o father_n have_v always_o teach_v 19_o upon_o the_o same_o point_n he_o say_v in_o the_o first_o edition_n that_o the_o right_n of_o pretension_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o the_o reform_a minister_n be_v always_o allege_v to_o make_v that_o power_n odious_a be_v not_o of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n nor_o at_o all_o set_v down_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o latter_a he_o say_v in_o more_o indefinite_a term_n that_o as_o to_o those_o matter_n of_o which_o there_o be_v dispute_v in_o the_o school_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o necessary_a to_o speak_v thereof_o see_v they_o be_v not_o ●f_a the_o catholic_n faith_n 20._o to_o conclude_v 518._o pag._n 518._o in_o the_o first_o edition_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n draw_v to_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o treatise_n say_v that_o the_o fundamental_o of_o salvation_n be_v the_o adoration_n of_o one_o only_a god_n father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o a_o belief_n in_o one_o saviour_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o latter_a he_o recall_v this_o so_o absolute_a proposition_n plain_o see_v that_o the_o allow_v this_o maxim_n be_v to_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v we_o proper_o who_o have_v the_o fundamental_o of_o salvation_n for_o our_o doctrine_n reduce_v itself_o unto_o these_o two_o head_n and_o we_o have_v nothing_o contrary_a unto_o they_o neither_o in_o reality_n nor_o in_o appearance_n i_o pass_v over_o some_o other_o alteration_n that_o be_v less_o considerable_a especial_o if_o look_v on_o each_o apart_o but_o all_o together_o do_v sufficient_o speak_v the_o trouble_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v to_o put_v his_o treatise_n into_o the_o condition_n it_o be_v now_o in_o the_o only_a thing_n to_o be_v add_v in_o this_o regard_n be_v that_o though_o it_o may_v plain_o be_v perceive_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n propose_v to_o himself_o two_o principal_a end_n in_o his_o treatise_n the_o one_o to_o insinuate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n diminish_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v what_o she_o hold_v that_o be_v most_o violent_o offensive_a the_o other_o to_o oppose_v we_o principal_o upon_o two_o point_n in_o which_o he_o believe_v he_o can_v have_v put_v we_o unto_o great_a difficulty_n namely_o the_o reality_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o it_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v only_o upon_o the_o positive_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v stagger_v that_o he_o have_v touch_v and_o retouched_a withdraw_v diminish_v or_o add_v and_o final_o that_o he_o have_v make_v all_o the_o alteration_n above_o mention_v now_o from_o whence_o can_v proceed_v this_o kind_n of_o variation_n in_o a_o exposition_n of_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v know_v how_o well_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n be_v qualify_v and_o the_o great_a clearness_n and_o readiness_n he_o have_v in_o express_v himself_o it_o can_v be_v say_v but_o that_o he_o understand_v perfect_o not_o only_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o we_o also_o four_o year_n past_a when_o his_o manuscript_n copy_n be_v disperse_v among_o we_o or_o ten_o month_n since_o when_o he_o cause_v his_o treatise_n to_o be_v print_v the_o first_o time_n as_o well_o as_o he_o know_v it_o at_o this_o present_a therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o these_o difficulty_n do_v proceed_v from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o opinion_n that_o he_o lay_v down_o which_o have_v no_o certain_a foundation_n which_o
pius_n the_o four_o which_o do_v contain_v the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o give_v it_o all_o its_o authority_n that_o bull_n express_o forbid_v all_o sort_n of_o person_n of_o what_o order_n or_o dignity_n soever_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o pope_n only_o except_v to_o explain_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n in_o whatsoever_o manner_n or_o under_o whatsoever_o pretext_n it_o may_v be_v and_o do_v before_o hand_n make_v void_a all_o such_o explication_n after_o this_o let_v any_o one_o tell_v we_o what_o foundation_n may_v be_v have_v for_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v explain_v of_o these_o decree_n how_o to_o be_v assure_v that_o some_o person_n of_o his_o communion_n will_v not_o stand_v up_o and_o think_v he_o may_v say_v of_o he_o what_o he_o have_v say_v of_o other_o that_o herein_o he_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a doctor_n that_o we_o ought_v only_o to_o rest_n upon_o the_o proper_a term_n of_o the_o council_n or_o at_o far_a of_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v reserve_v unto_o himself_o the_o explication_n and_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o will_v abate_v nothing_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o same_o council_n nor_o of_o the_o opinion_n receive_v in_o the_o chair_n and_o university_n nor_o of_o the_o general_a practice_n what_o abuse_v soever_o be_v pretend_v in_o it_o however_o it_o be_v we_o may_v observe_v as_o we_o pass_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v here_o silent_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n all_o clear_v and_o all_o decide_v 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v no●_n for_o all_o so_o clear_a but_o that_o it_o have_v y●●_n need_v of_o far_a explication_n which_o 〈◊〉_d most_o true_a as_o to_o the_o very_a ground_n 〈◊〉_d it_o and_o they_o have_v for_o this_o same_o reaso●_n design_o put_v their_o several_a decree_n i●_n general_a and_o ambiguous_a term_n to_o giu_v in_o appearance_n the_o great_a satisfaction_n to_o people_n it_o will_v now_o be_v see_v by_o th●_n sequel_n if_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n himself_o will_v speak_v plain_o on_o these_o doubtful_a point_n if_o he_o will_v not_o contain_v himself_o still_o in_o general_a term_n or_o if_o he_o will_v not_o whole_o pass_v over_o those_o point_n here_o in_o silence_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n what_o will_v become_v of_o we_o the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v they_o be_v obscure_a it_o appertain_v unto_o the_o church_n to_o explain_v it_o according_a to_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o father_n the_o father_n have_v their_o obscurity_n everyone_o draw_v they_o to_o their_o side_n it_o will_v require_v many_o year_n to_o examine_v they_o and_o it_o will_v not_o be_v easy_a to_o form_v a_o unanimous_a sense_n they_o add_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o council_n to_o determine_v that_o by_o their_o decree_n but_o in_o these_o very_a decree_n there_o be_v thing_n very_o ambiguous_a and_o that_o may_v receive_v a_o double_a and_o a_o triple_a sense_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v present_v we_o a_o exposition_n which_o he_o say_v be_v faithful_a in_o good_a time_n but_o another_o prelate_n or_o a_o doctor_n of_o sorbon_n will_v say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n be_v not_o sufficient_o authorise_v for_o that_o or_o that_o he_o have_v need_v himself_o to_o be_v explain_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n those_o who_o be_v afraid_a of_o offend_v god_n by_o a_o religious_a observance_n of_o anything_o which_o be_v not_o god_n and_o who_o desire_v nothing_o but_o to_o worship_n the_o true_a god_n pure_o according_a to_o his_o word_n shall_v abide_v as_o it_o be_v suspend_v betwixt_o all_o these_o uncertainty_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o yield_v any_o acquiescency_n unto_o these_o lively_a beam_n where_o with_o this_o divine_a word_n have_v replenish_v their_o soul_n this_o be_v what_o the_o design_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n treatise_n will_v lead_v we_o unto_o but_o let_v we_o proceed_v unto_o the_o treatise_n itself_o and_o let_v we_o see_v if_o this_o exposition_n such_o as_o it_o be_v will_v produce_v the_o two_o effect_n it_o promise_n which_o be_v to_o cause_v all_o dispute_n to_o vanish_v or_o to_o reduce_v they_o un●●●_n such_o term_n as_o according_a to_o our_o ow●_n principle_n have_v nothing_o in_o they_o whic●_n wound_v the_o foundation_n of_o faith_n gion_n ii_o the_o general_a proposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n that_o they_o of_o the_o p._n r._n r._n do_v confess_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v believe_v all_o the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o chri_n stian_n reli_n gion_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n begin_v wit●_n this_o general_a proposition_n that_o those_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pretend_a reform_a religion_n 〈◊〉_d avow_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n d●●_n receive_v all_o the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o 〈◊〉_d christian_n religion_n here_o at_o first_o it_o ma●_n be_v see_v as_o also_o in_o the_o title_n of_o th●_n treatise_n that_o by_o the_o catholic_n chur●_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n intend_v the_o r●mish_a church_n it_o be_v a_o usage_n whic●_n the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n very_o much_o more_o affect_v of_o late_a th●●_n they_o have_v be_v accustom_v namely_o it_o seem_v to_o cover_v themselves_o with_o more_o authentic_a title_n and_o to_o tak●_n a_o kind_n of_o advantage_n in_o word_n abo●●_n all_o other_o christian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v tha●_n the_o name_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n an●_n the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v not_o sufficient_o to_o their_o mind_n mean_v the_o same_o thing_n the_o one_o dot●_n seem_v much_o more_o auspicious_a than_o th●_n other_o and_o moreover_o this_o same_o thin●_n make_v evident_a that_o the_o title_n whic●_n party_n or_o communion_n assume_v unto_o themselves_o according_a as_o they_o have_v more_o lustre_n and_o power_n be_v not_o always_o a_o certain_a proof_n that_o they_o do_v possess_v in_o reality_n what_o these_o title_n ascribe_v to_o they_o because_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o dispute_n and_o in_o the_o very_a place_n where_o this_o title_n of_o catholic_n be_v in_o question_n one_o party_n do_v claim_v it_o for_o himself_o in_o prejudice_n of_o all_o other_o these_o gentleman_n do_v herein_o like_o prince_n who_o always_o retain_v the_o title_n of_o country_n which_o they_o once_o possess_v although_o they_o have_v lose_v those_o country_n several_a age_n past_a it_o be_v true_a that_o we_o ourselves_o do_v some_o time_n give_v they_o the_o name_n of_o roman_a catholic_n or_o this_o simple_o of_o catholic_n as_o well_o therein_o to_o accommodate_v ourselves_o to_o the_o stream_n of_o the_o general_a use_n as_o for_o the_o advantage_n of_o peace_n be_v to_o live_v among_o they_o according_a as_o also_o for_o these_o very_a consideration_n we_o give_v they_o the_o name_n of_o father_n of_o bishop_n of_o prelate_n and_o other_o the_o title_n which_o they_o give_v unto_o themselves_o although_o the_o right_a by_o which_o they_o pretend_v to_o take_v they_o be_v yet_o in_o question_n and_o it_o may_v be_v the_o word_n catholic_n will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o urge_v here_o above_o all_o other_o if_o it_o do_v not_o in_o the_o beginning_n cause_n a_o ambiguity_n in_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n proposition_n which_o be_v that_o we_o do_v allow_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v believe_v all_o the_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n for_o who_o be_v it_o that_o ever_o doubt_v a_o proposition_n conceive_v in_o those_o term_n we_o allow_v in_o earnest_n that_o the_o church_n true_o catholic_n and_o universal_a which_o we_o profess_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o be_v the_o body_n 〈◊〉_d the_o elect_a of_o all_o age_n not_o only_o always_o have_v hold_v and_o shall_v always_o hold_v all_o the_o fundamental_a point_n but_o that_o she_o never_o do_v nor_o ever_o shall_v hold_v any_o capital_a error_n which_o do_v intirel_n 〈◊〉_d destroy_v the_o foundation_n and_o this_o i_o 〈◊〉_d what_o we_o can_v say_v of_o the_o church_n o_o 〈◊〉_d rome_n we_o own_o that_o she_o do_v receive_v the_o fundamental_a article_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v allege_v but_o we_o do_v say_v at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o he_o himself_o do_v instance_n that_o she_o destroy_v the_o foundation_n by_o contrary_a article_n and_o we_o prove_v it_o not_o only_o by_o the_o consequence_n which_o we_o draw_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n aver_v only_o because_o it_o please_v he_o so_o to_o do_v 8_o p._n 8_o but_o direct_o by_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o which_o she_o teach_v and_o open_o practice_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v teach_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o worship_n one_o only_a god_n father_n son_n and_o
holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v the_o first_o and_o most_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n but_o at_o the_o very_a same_o instant_n she_o do_v teach_v another_o article_n which_o be_v quite_o contrary_a according_a to_o we_o when_o she_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o worship_n and_o when_o she_o do_v indeed_o worship_n that_o which_o according_a to_o we_o be_v not_o god_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n receive_v as_o we_o do_v the_o first_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n which_o forbid_v have_v any_o other_o god_n than_o the_o mighty_a and_o jealous_a god_n yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n she_o call_v upon_o the_o saint_n which_o be_v a_o religious_a worship_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n and_o according_a to_o we_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n or_o part_n of_o that_o worship_n which_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o give_v but_o to_o god_n only_o not_o to_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o excess_n which_o be_v see_v in_o that_o worship_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n receive_v the_o second_o commandment_n which_o do_v particular_o forbid_v the_o make_n image_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o heaven_n or_o in_o the_o earth_n to_o worship_v they_o but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n she_o do_v make_v image_n of_o the_o very_a person_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n she_o kneel_v down_o before_o they_o and_o do_v serve_v they_o religious_o against_o the_o express_a term_n of_o the_o commandment_n and_o it_o be_v also_o well_o know_v to_o what_o excess_n she_o have_v advance_v this_o worship_n in_o the_o practice_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n receive_v as_o we_o do_v the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o be_v ●n_v abridgement_n of_o the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o those_o who_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o it_o and_o that_o do_v understand_v it_o in_o the_o full_a force_n of_o its_o expression_n but_o therein_o itself_o we_o do_v agree_v no_o wise_a touch_v that_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v suppose_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o pure_a and_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o creed_n we_o pretend_v that_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o creator_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n do_v mean_a so_o to_o believe_v in_o god_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o religion_n as_o not_o to_o have_v the_o least_o confidence_n in_o any_o thing_n else_o and_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o worship_v of_o saint_n of_o relic_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o of_o image_n especial_o in_o the_o excess_n and_o inevitable_a abuse_n which_o follow_v however_o the_o matter_n be_v sweeten_v in_o disputation_n be_v a_o degree_n of_o a_o religious_a confidence_n in_o the_o creature_n which_o thereby_o do_v become_v sharer_n in_o what_o we_o owe_v only_o unto_o the_o creator_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o we_o believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n that_o he_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o that_o it_o be_v he_o who_o shall_v come_v from_o thence_o to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a but_o she_o believe_v at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v also_o every_o day_n corporal_o upon_o earth_n though_o in_o a_o invisible_a state_n and_o different_a from_o that_o estate_n he_o be_v in_o in_o heaven_n here_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o in_o effect_n all_o these_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o several_a other_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o that_o will_v be_v useless_a in_o this_o part_n of_o the_o question_n where_o it_o suffice_v to_o intimate_v that_o we_o do_v so_o believe_v what_o follow_v will_v show_v the_o reason_n which_o we_o have_v to_o believe_v so_o 1_o p._n 9_o a._n 1_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v here_o make_v the_o objection_n against_o we_o which_o be_v usual_o make_v against_o we_o touch_v the_o lutheran_n that_o the_o consequence_n which_o we_o draw_v from_o their_o doctrine_n do_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o we_o admit_v they_o into_o our_o communion_n although_o these_o consequence_n do_v seem_v to_o destroy_v the_o foundation_n but_o there_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o lutheran_n and_o the_o roman-catholic_n in_o reference_n unto_o we_o in_o effect_n we_o agree_v that_o always_o heed_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v of_o the_o consequence_n which_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o a_o doctrine_n doubtless_o we_o ought_v to_o distinguish_v the_o consequence_n contest_v by_o he_o that_o do_v teach_v the_o doctrine_n and_o which_o do_v not_o produce_v any_o effect_n in_o the_o intention_n nor_o worship_n from_o those_o which_o be_v grant_v by_o the_o very_a person_n which_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n and_o which_o be_v follow_v by_o a_o sort_n of_o worship_n which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v evil_a it_o be_v true_a that_o mr._n daille_n say_v of_o the_o lutheran_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v instance_n that_o they_o have_v a_o opinion_n which_o according_a unto_o we_o do_v infer_v as_o well_o as_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o destruction_n of_o the_o humanity_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o it_o be_v also_o very_o certain_a that_o this_o consequence_n as_o mr._n daille_n do_v add_v can_v be_v without_o great_a injustice_n impute_v unto_o they_o because_o they_o do_v formal_o deny_v it_o and_o that_o beside_o they_o have_v nothing_o in_o their_o worship_n which_o do_v establish_v or_o suppose_v this_o consequence_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o expression_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr dailles_fw-fr which_o have_v be_v so_o urge_v of_o late_a time_n and_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v here_o again_o urge_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o lutheran_n have_v not_o venom_n in_o it_o which_o be_v notwithstanding_o a_o natural_a expression_n and_o proper_a to_o the_o subject_a for_o it_o import_v nothing_o else_o but_o what_o be_v say_v b●fore_o that_o the_o lutheran_n deny_v the_o consequence_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o believe_v the_o humanity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o do_v their_o error_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n although_o it_o may_v be_v gross_a according_a unto_o we_o may_v nevertheless_o be_v charitable_o bear_v with_o for_o the_o advantage_n of_o peace_n and_o union_n but_o as_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v not_o only_o by_o consequence_n but_o by_o a_o positive_a doctrine_n and_o by_o a_o constant_a practice_n as_o we_o pretend_v whatsoever_o she_o say_v that_o she_o do_v not_o sufficient_o acknowledge_v the_o sovereignty_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o god_n nor_o the_o quality_n of_o saviour_n and_o mediator_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n nor_o the_o superabundant_a fullness_n of_o his_o merit_n because_o it_o appear_v plain_o unto_o we_o that_o she_o give_v unto_o the_o creature_n the_o worship_n which_o be_v only_o due_a unto_o the_o creator_n and_o that_o she_o do_v make_v to_o concur_v the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o man_n with_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o can_v with_o justice_n be_v say_v that_o the_o lutheran_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o humanity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o it_o be_v no_o calumny_n to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v worship_n the_o host_n and_o that_o she_o do_v give_v a_o religious_a worship_n to_o saint_n &_o to_o their_o relic_n to_o image_n and_o unto_o the_o cross_n etc._n etc._n these_o be_v not_o consequence_n contest_v but_o positive_a doctrine_n confirm_v by_o practice_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o cover_v the_o contrariety_n we_o conceive_v between_o the_o fundamental_a article_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v and_o those_o other_o worship_n that_o we_o reject_v pass_v over_o here_o in_o silence_n what_o shall_v have_v be_v speak_v touch_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n which_o point_n alone_a most_o open_o show_v this_o contrariety_n he_o think_v to_o reconcile_v all_o by_o his_o second_o proposition_n 4.10_o iii_o second_o pro●●ion_n general_a of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n this_o the_o catho_n church_n do_v teach_v that_o the_o religious_a worship_v of_o saint_n and_o image_n etc._n etc._n terminate_v itself_o in_o god_n only_o mat._n 4.10_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v teach_v that_o all_o religion_n worship_n ought_v to_o terminate_v itself_o on_o god_n we_o say_v more_o simple_o and_o more_o natural_o that_o all_o religious_a worship_n ought_v to_o address_v itself_o unto_o god_n because_o indeed_o religion_n shall_v regard_v nothing_o but_o god_n and_o shall_v have_v only_o he_o for_o its_o object_n all_o religious_a worship_n shall_v begin_v with_o he_o continue_v in_o he_o and_o end_n on_o he_o this_o be_v it_o to_o which_o only_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n do_v tend_v there_o can_v be_v show_v in_o
those_o holy_a original_n neither_o commandment_n nor_o example_n to_o the_o contrary_n thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n an●_n he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v say_v our_o saviour_n to_o the_o devil_n that_o tempt_v he_o if_o religion_n be_v only_o a_o arbitrary_a worship_n 1._o st._n aug._n lib._n 4._o contr_n faust_n cap._n 11._o &_o the_o genes_n cont_n manich._n li_n be_v a_o p._n 1._o and_o that_o to_o render_v it_o lawful_a it_o be_v enough_o to_o refer_v all_o to_o god_n the_o manichee_n which_o adore_v god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n with_o a_o sovereign_a worship_n and_o who_o also_o worship_v the_o sun_n and_o moon_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o residence_n they_o believe_v god_n make_v in_o those_o glorious_a body_n may_v have_v say_v that_o they_o do_v terminate_v all_o in_o god_n and_o in_o a_o word_n there_o can_v be_v no_o false_a worship_n superstition_n or_o evil_a action_n which_o may_v not_o be_v justify_v if_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o say_v that_o all_o do_v terminate_v in_o god_n beside_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v but_o fair_o say_v that_o she_o teach_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n ought_v to_o refer_v itself_o to_o or_o terminate_v itself_o on_o god_n the_o people_n will_v everlasting_o terminate_v it_o on_o the_o saint_n on_o their_o relic_n and_o on_o their_o image_n because_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o cause_v that_o grosser_n mind_n can_v form_v to_o themselves_o any_o idea_n of_o a_o infinie_a and_o in_o visible_a god_n as_o he_o be_v do_v also_o make_v they_o natural_o to_o stop_v at_o saint_n and_o creature_n and_o that_o they_o rely_v more_o on_o thing_n which_o they_o see_v or_o know_v than_o on_o that_o which_o they_o only_o know_v imperfect_o they_o will_v have_v as_o the_o jew_n have_v god_n to_o march_v before_o they_o and_o at_o all_o time_n when_o relic_n and_o image_n be_v set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n as_o be_v usual_a their_o eye_n and_o their_o heart_n far_o from_o be_v lift_v up_o unto_o god_n will_v stop_v not_o only_o at_o the_o saint_n themselves_o but_o at_o their_o image_n and_o relic_n the_o second_o part._n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v here_o descend_v from_o the_o general_n proposition_n touch_v the_o nature_n of_o religious_a worship_n saint_n of_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n to_o the_o explication_n of_o particular_a worship_n which_o do_v make_v part_n of_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n whereunto_o he_o reduce_v the_o controversy_n he_o begin_v with_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n endeavour_v also_o to_o sweeten_v and_o extenuate_v this_o worship_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o in_o the_o doctrine_n as_o in_o the_o practice_n and_o only_o study_v colourable_a mean_n to_o insinuate_v his_o doctrine_n in_o stead_n of_o follow_v the_o natural_a order_n of_o thing_n &_o of_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o that_o be_v to_o say_v instead_o of_o establish_v before_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v a_o lawful_a worship_n institute_v by_o god_n and_o by_o consequence_n well_o please_v in_o his_o eye_n he_o endeavour_v to_o surprise_v man_n mind_n by_o this_o other_o general_a proposition_n that_o those_o of_o the_o pretend_a reform_a religion_n be_v press_v by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o truth_n do_v begin_v to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o pray_v unto_o saint_n and_o to_o honour_v their_o relic_n be_v establish_v ever_o since_o the_o four_o century_n he_o mean_v that_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o this_o worship_n do_v begin_v to_o be_v establish_v at_o that_o time_n this_o be_v but_o a_o pervert_n of_o word_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n know_v very_o well_o that_o it_o be_v not_o now_o that_o we_o do_v begin_v to_o make_v this_o acknowledgement_n and_o that_o this_o acknowledgement_n be_v neither_o new_a nor_o force_v nor_o particular_a to_o mounseur_fw-fr daille_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v seem_v to_o take_v notice_n etc._n clemnit_fw-la casaub_n ●ossias_fw-la du_fw-fr moulin_n etc._n etc._n blonde●_n chamier_n bochard_n in_o a_o word_n all_o those_o who_o have_v treat_v thorough_o of_o this_o subject_a have_v agree_v upon_o the_o time_n in_o which_o pray_v unto_o saint_n begin_v to_o be_v introduce_v this_o trick_n of_o expression_n from_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n be_v only_o a_o short_a w●y_n to_o insinuate_v that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o variation_n betwixt_o our_o author_n and_o less_o sincerity_n at_o one_o time_n than_o at_o another_o which_o nevertheless_o have_v not_o the_o least_o ground_n however_o his_o proposition_n shall_v be_v explain_v that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v mistake_v it_o be_v true_a that_o we_o have_v always_o acknowledge_v that_o pray_v unto_o saint_n begin_v to_o be_v practise_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o four_o age_n but_o we_o never_o acknowledge_v neither_o do_v we_o yet_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v a_o usage_n then_o establish_v in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v it_o true_a that_o it_o be_v authorise_v by_o any_o council_n only_o if_o it_o be_v needful_a we_o make_v appear_v by_o convince_a proof_n not_o only_o that_o there_o be_v neither_o command_n nor_o example_n neither_o in_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n for_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n but_o also_o that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o mark_n in_o any_o of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o fi●●●_n three_o age_n which_o be_v extant_a in_o sufficient_o great_a number_n mr._n d●ille_n do_v not_o accuse_v any_o the_o father_n much_o less_o st._n augusti●●_n to_o have_v change_v the_o doctrine_n in_o th●_n point_n from_o the_o former_a age_n for_o 〈◊〉_d austin_n have_v declare_v himself_o the_o le●_n of_o any_o for_o these_o sort_n of_o prayer_n 〈◊〉_d saint_n mr._n daille_n do_v only_o complain_v of_o this_o that_o they_o suffer_v they_o insensible_o to_o be_v bring_v in_o upon_o bad_a principle_n and_o do_v accuse_v they_o of_o haul_v err_v in_o this_o as_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d rome_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o the●_n have_v all_o err_v in_o other_o thing_n if_o th●_n bishop_n of_o condom_n pretend_v that_o th●_n be_v to_o abandon_v those_o great_a man_n under_o colour_n of_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o be_v man_n subject_a to_o error_n the_o millenaries_n which_o do_v yet_o to_o this_o day_n expect_v a_o kingdom_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n on_o earth_n under_o the_o immediate_a government_n of_o christ_n jesus_n those_o whic●_n believe_v that_o soul_n at_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n shall_v sleep_v until_o th●_n day_n of_o judgement_n and_o general_o al●_n those_o that_o have_v follow_v or_o do_v ye●_n follow_v any_o one_o of_o these_o error_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o first_o age_n may_v as_o well_o say_v that_o we_o have_v abandon_v those_o of_o the_o father_n who_o follow_v or_o teach_v those_o matter_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o they_o be_v not_o error_n but_o doctrine_n lawful_o establish_v but_o it_o will_v appear_v very_o unlikely_a say_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n that_o mr._n daillé_n have_v better_a understand_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n than_o those_o who_o have_v gather_v as_o it_o may_v be_v say_v the_o succession_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o he_o will_v be_v much_o less_o believe_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o four_o age_n where_o far_o from_o perceive_v that_o there_o be_v any_o innovation_n bring_v in_o in_o their_o worship_n this_o minister_n on_o the_o contrary_n have_v produce_v express_a text_n by_o which_o they_o clear_o show_v that_o they_o pretend_v in_o pray_v to_o the_o saint_n to_o have_v follow_v the_o example_n of_o those_o who_o go_v before_o they_o these_o kind_n of_o discourse_n be_v very_o uncertain_a and_o be_v proper_o but_o colour_n if_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o have_v mention_v the_o text_n he_o speak_v of_o it_o will_v have_v be_v see_v that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o in_o any_o of_o they_o which_o show_v clear_o as_o he_o will_v have_v man_n believe_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o four_o age_n do_v preten●_n that_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v it_o use_v in_o the_o three_o precedent_a age_n it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o those_o who_o have_v no_o good_a ground_n not_o lawful_a right_n for_o what_o they_o do_v to_o seek_v to_o authorise_v themselves_o at_o leas●_n by_o example_n as_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v at_o this_o present_a by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o tradition_n but_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o author_n of_o the_o four_o age_n have_v write_v i●_n general_n term_n that_o in_o pray_v unto_o saint_n in_o that_o age_n they_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o those_o that_o have_v go_v before_o they_o not_o
show_v the_o time_n when_o these_o example_n appear_v who_o see●_n not_o that_o this_o may_v be_v refer_v unto_o the_o time_n immediate_o go_v before_o in_o the_o same_o age_n and_o will_v conclude_v nothing_o for_o the_o three_o first_o if_o nothing_o be_v ●o_o be_v find_v in_o those_o age_n howsoever_o i●_n be_v we_o believe_v shall_v we_o be_v abl●_n to_o ●a●e_v appear_v that_o never_o any_o author_n of_o the_o four_o age_n have_v allege_v any_o text_n of_o the_o three_o former_a th●_n make_v out_o that_o in_o those_o time_n they_o pray_v unto_o saint_n the_o cardinal_n du_n perron_n p●a●_n in_o the_o reply_n unto_o the_o king_n of_o great_a britain_n answer_n 187●_n impress_n p●a●_n who_o art_n in_o turn_v all_o to_o his_o advantage_n be_v sufficient_o know_v have_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v in_o proper_a term_n that_o there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v any_o footstep_n of_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o author_n next_o to_o the_o apostle_n age_n seek_v vain_a sleight_n and_o evasion_n upon_o this_o matter_n perez_n a_o spanish_a bishop_n 197●_n os_fw-la tradi_fw-la pa_z 197●_n more_o sincere_a go_v far_a confess_v that_o he_o find_v not_o that_o any_o pray_v unto_o saint_n before_o the_o year_n 360._o see_v then_o more_o than_o three_o age_n and_o a●_n half_a exempt_v from_o the_o pretension_n of_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o church_n o●_n rom_n by_o their_o own_o confession_n and_o what_o can_v there_o be_v more_o convince_a on_o the_o side_n of_o tradition_n unto_o those_o which_o make_v if_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n against_o such_o a_o worship_n as_o this_o which_o make_v so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n than_o not_o to_o find_v at_o all_o the_o least_o step_n of_o it_o in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o 360_o year_n the_o pure_a time_n of_o christianity_n as_o to_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o at_o all_o likely_a that_o mr._n daille_n have_v better_o understand_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n than_o those_o of_o the_o four_o age_n do_v understand_v they_o first_o it_o be_v not_o here_o the_o business_n to_o understand_v or_o not_o to_o understand_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n for_o none_o of_o their_o writing_n can_v be_v allege_v which_o those_o of_o the_o four_o age_n have_v understand_v i●_n one_o sense_n and_o mr._n daille_n in_o another_o the_o only_a business_n be_v to_o know_v i●_n there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o those_o writing_n which_o show_v that_o they_o pray_v unto_o saint_n mr._n daille_n affirm_v that_o he_o find_v nothing_o at_o all_o du_n perr●●_n and_o perez_n speak_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n as_o be_v already_o say_v and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o four_o age_n say_v nothing_o contrary_a but_o if_o there_o be_v occasion_n to_o explain_v any_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n it_o will_v not_o possible_o be_v so_o great_a a_o paradox_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n imagine_v to_o suppose_v that_o mr._n daille_n have_v be_v able_a to_o understand_v they_o as_o well_o as_o most_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o four_o age_n do_v understand_v they_o those_o who_o among_o all_o his_o other_o work_n have_v read_v his_o book_n of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o roman_a tradition_n of_o the_o object_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o latin_n and_o upon_o the_o epistle_n attribute_v to_o st._n ignatius_n where_o he_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v thorough_o of_o the_o doctr_v of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n will_v acknowledge_v if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o least_o just_a and_o sincere_a that_o haply_o scarce_o any_o before_o he_o have_v either_o more_o study_v or_o better_a understand_v the_o father_n than_o he_o and_o i_o may_v credible_a say_v here_o that_o if_o the_o veneration_n which_o be_v to_o be_v have_v for_o ancient_a thing_n be_v one_o day_n join_v unto_o the_o proper_a excellency_n of_o his_o work_n and_o unto_o the_o clear_a reputation_n in_o which_o he_o live_v &_o preach_v even_o unto_o a_o great_a age_n he_o will_v be_v esteem_v in_o after_o time_n for_o one_o of_o the_o great_a &_o most_o excellent_a doctor_n which_o the_o church_n ever_o have_v the_o father_n of_o the_o four_o age_n live_v some_o in_o europe_n other_o in_o asia_n and_o some_o in_o africa_n print_v not_o be_v then_o in_o use_n there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o facility_n to_o see_v all_o the_o manuscript_n of_o foreign_a part_n the_o father_n have_v each_o their_o proper_a light_n and_o peculiar_a study_n of_o some_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o precede_a age_n and_o of_o their_o own_o at_o this_o day_n those_o who_o have_v the_o time_n wisdom_n judgement_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o tongue_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o well_o understand_v the_o father_n may_v collect_v not_o only_o all_o the_o father_n work_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n but_o also_o the_o several_a light_n of_o the_o four_o and_o also_o join_v unto_o those_o light_n those_o of_o all_o the_o follow_a age_n unto_o that_o wherein_o we_o live_v day_n unto_o day_n utter_v speech_n &_o right_a unto_o night_n show_v knowledge_n who_o question_n but_o at_o this_o time_n several_a place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v better_o understand_v than_o they_o be_v in_o the_o first_o age_n this_o dispute_n itself_o have_v serve_v to_o clear_v many_o truth_n which_o be_v not_o know_v until_o these_o last_o time_n for_o instance_n several_a passage_n misunderstand_v by_o the_o father_n which_o be_v now_o better_o understand_v in_o the_o one_o and_o in_o the_o other_o communion_n than_o they_o be_v former_o and_o sundry_a error_n whereinto_o it_o be_v agree_v they_o be_v fall_v from_o which_o praise_v be_v god_n we_o be_v now_o deliver_v here_o it_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n come_v at_o length_n to_o explain_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n touch_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n in_o particular_a what_o he_o say_v may_v be_v reduce_v to_o this_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v useful_a to_o pray_v unto_o saint_n and_o that_o she_o teach_v to_o pray_v unto_o they_o in_o a_o spirit_n of_o charity_n and_o brotherly_a fellowship_n as_o we_o pray_v to_o our_o brethren_n that_o be_v live_v upon_o earth_n that_o this_o prayer_n unto_o saint_n do_v not_o any_o more_o derogate_v from_o the_o mediation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n than_o that_o which_o we_o make_v unto_o our_o live_a brethren_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n make_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o prayer_n which_o she_o addres●●●_n unto_o god_n and_o those_o which_o she_o make_v unto_o saint_n that_o unto_o god_n she_o say_v have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o and_o to_o the_o saint_n only_o pray_v for_o we_o and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n unto_o which_o the_o church_n reduce_v all_o the_o prayer_n unto_o saint_n in_o whatsoever_o term_n they_o be_v conceive_v that_o the_o council_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v good_a and_o useful_a to_o call_v upon_o the_o saint_n in_o a_o humble_a manner_n and_o to_o fly_v unto_o their_o aid_n for_o obtain_v benefit_n of_o god_n by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n conceive_v not_o how_o we_o can_v say_v that_o this_o be_v to_o depart_v from_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n afterward_o he_o add_v that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o offer_v unto_o god_n 〈◊〉_d holy_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n but_o only_o so_o as_o to_o name_v they_o 〈◊〉_d the_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n to_o render_v his_o thanks_o for_o their_o victory_n and_o to_o pray_v hi●_n to_o be_v incline_v by_o their_o intercession_n mo●●_n over_o that_o this_o be_v not_o to_o advance_v the_o creature_n above_o its_o condition_n to_o attribute_v 〈◊〉_d they_o a_o knowledge_n of_o the_o desire_n and_o necessity_n of_o which_o we_o make_v secret_a ●●quests_n unto_o they_o in_o as_o much_o as_o th●_n god_n have_v not_o refuse_v to_o reveal_v thing_n 〈◊〉_d come_v unto_o the_o prophet_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v more_o particular_o reserve_v un●●_n his_o own_o knowledge_n that_o last_o th●_n church_n do_v not_o decide_v any_o thing_n up●●_n the_o different_a mean_n which_o god_n make_v use_v of_o in_o impart_v this_o knowledge_n un●●_n the_o saint_n whether_o he_o do_v it_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n or_o by_o a_o particular_a revelation_n or_o whether_o he_o discover_v all_o unto_o they_o in_o his_o infinite_a essence_n where_o a_o truth_n be_v comprise_v this_o be_v the_o sense_n and_o as_o near_a a●_n may_v be_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n ver●_n expression_n whereby_o he_o will_v sweeten_v his_o doctrine_n as_o much_o
all_o its_o part_n he_o tell_v we_o not_o one_o word_n which_o say_v that_o god_n have_v thus_o ordain_v it_o as_o if_o religion_n be_v only_o a_o human_a discipline_n and_o that_o god_n will_v be_v honour_v and_o serve_v according_a to_o our_o thought_n 5.9_o deut_n 12_o 32_o be_v 1_n 12_o m●t_n 5.9_o and_o not_o after_o his_o own_o institution_n look_v into_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n the_o catechism_n make_v by_o its_o authority_n the_o commandment_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o never_o tell_v we_o upon_o this_o matter_n no_o more_o than_o on_o many_o other_o god_n will_v we_o pray_v unto_o saint_n or_o god_n bid_v we_o pray_v unto_o saint_n but_o the_o church_n do_v teach_v or_o the_o council_n do_v teach_v the_o council_n ordain_v and_o pronounce_v anathema_n this_o stile_n be_v very_o different_a from_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n the_o former_a begin_v and_o almost_o ever_o end_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n ●1_n exod._n 5.1_o 1_o c●●_n 23_o ●1_n and_o the_o other_o we_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n what_o we_o ha●e_v also_o deliver_v unto_o you_o it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o be_v god_n himself_o which_o speak_v by_o their_o mouth_n but_o this_o be_v to_o say_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o question_n and_o very_o much_o in_o question_n this_o be_v to_o multiply_v question_n whereas_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n pretend_v to_o diminish_v they_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o neither_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n no●_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n nor_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n who_o explain_v their_o doctrine_n be_v able_a to_o find_v one_o single_a passage_n it_o all_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n which_o say_v that_o god_n will_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n nay_o what_o be_v far_o from_o that_o we_o do_v allege_v in_o this_o case_n a_o great_a number_n which_o say_v the_o contrary_n the_o first_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v teach_v be_v that_o be_v profitable_a to_o call_v upon_o the_o saint_n and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o as_o to_o this_o part_n the_o council_n do_v speak_v in_o these_o term_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v a_o little_a more_o sweetten_v the_o matter_n in_o add_v that_o the_o council_n be_v content_a to_o teach_v the_o faithful_a that_o this_o practice_n be_v good_a and_o useful_a for_o they_o without_o say_v any_o thing_n more_o and_o that_o so_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o condemn_v those_o who_o reject_v this_o practice_n through_o scorn_n or_o error_n this_o do_v manifest_o enough_o declare_v that_o those_o which_o be_v already_o in_o the_o roman_a communion_n may_v very_o well_o abstain_v from_o all_o invocation_n of_o the_o saint_n do_v it_o with_o good_a intention_n as_o for_o example_n not_o to_o pray_v but_o unto_o god_n alone_o or_o not_o believe_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n to_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a provide_v they_o do_v not_o despise_v nor_o condemn_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v oblige_v to_o preach_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n as_o the_o council_n do_v very_o express_o ordain_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o hearken_v unto_o they_o and_o believe_v also_o what_o they_o teach_v but_o not_o to_o do_v what_o they_o teach_v from_o whence_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o strange_a doctrine_n and_o a_o communion_n very_o extraordinary_a if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o may_v practise_v a_o religious_a worship_n and_o other_o may_v refuse_v it_o this_o do_v sufficient_o make_v evident_a that_o our_o belief_n and_o our_o practice_n be_v safe_a and_o that_o we_o do_v follow_v the_o secure_a way_n in_o that_o regard_n for_o if_o this_o worship_n be_v but_o useful_a if_o the_o council_n be_v content_v also_o to_o teach_v it_o so_o without_o say_v any_o far_a we_o who_o open_o profess_v that_o we_o do_v not_o reject_v it_o through_o scorn_n but_o only_o through_o the_o belief_n which_o we_o have_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o address_v our_o vow_n and_o prayer_n but_o to_o god_n only_o in_o appearance_n be_v not_o in_o any_o danger_n of_o incur_v god_n displeasure_n in_o that_o behalf_n especial_o have_v neither_o comm●ndment_n as_o to_o this_o matter_n nor_o example_n in_o his_o word_n to_o oblige_v we_o ther●u●●●_n 〈◊〉_d whereas_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v well_o fear_v the_o jealousy_n of_o god_n if_o it_o be_v true_a as_o we_o believe_v that_o this_o worship_n be_v contrary_a to_o his_o will._n and_o it_o be_v likely_a that_o we_o who_o reject_v this_o worship_n because_o we_o be_v persuade_v that_o god_n alone_o shall_v be_v invoke_v be_v in_o as_o much_o safety_n at_o least_o as_o those_o who_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a communion_n who_o have_v their_o liberty_n to_o forbear_v it_o for_o it_o be_v a_o much_o less_o fault_n in_o religion_n not_o to_o do_v a_o thing_n when_o one_o think_v it_o not_o to_o be_v good_a than_o not_o to_o do_v it_o when_o one_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v good_a and_o useful_a but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n how_o shall_v we_o reconcile_v the_o expression_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n either_o with_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o roman_a catechism_n do_v prescribe_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o say_a council_n or_o with_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o with_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o all_o those_o of_o their_o communion_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n do_v say_v in_o express_a term_n not_o that_o it_o be_v good_a and_o useful_a to_o pray_v unto_o the_o saint_n but_o pure_o and_o simple_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v unto_o the_o answ_n answ_n to_o the_o repl_n of_o the_o king_n of_o great_a britain_n page_n 872_o saint_n pronounce_v anathema_n against_o all_o those_o which_o do_v not_o receive_v this_o doctrine_n and_o the_o cardinal_n du_fw-mi peron_n of_o who_o every_o one_o know_v how_o his_o judgement_n be_v follow_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v in_o express_a term_n that_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n be_v not_o only_o useful_a and_o lawful_a but_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a though_o by_o a_o conditional_a necessity_n which_o he_o do_v not_o explain_v clear_o however_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v this_o necessity_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n ambrose_n and_o st._n hilary_n in_o sum_n how_o can_v it_o be_v say_v of_o such_o a_o religious_a worship_n as_o this_o that_o it_o be_v but_o useful_a as_o if_o in_o religion_n all_o true_a worship_n be_v not_o a_o true_a duty_n and_o by_o consequence_n a_o thing_n necessary_a especial_o a_o worship_n which_o it_o be_v see_v do_v take_v up_o above_o half_a the_o time_n of_o the_o ceremony_n and_o service_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o when_o the_o bishop_n have_v order_n as_o in_o the_o matter_n now_o in_o hand_n etc._n in_o primis_fw-la counc_fw-la trent_n sess_n 26._o the_o invoc_n etc._n etc._n to_o teach_v above_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o saint_n who_o reign_n with_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v pray_v for_o we_o and_o that_o it_o be_v good_a and_o useful_a to_o render_v unto_o they_o a_o religious_a honour_n and_o to_o fly_v unto_o their_o aid_n and_o succour_n be_v not_o this_o to_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v it_o but_o if_o any_o among_o they_o will_v forbear_v in_o this_o matter_n either_o because_o they_o do_v not_o think_v it_o absolute_o necessary_a or_o because_o they_o will_v not_o address_v their_o prayer_n unto_o any_o but_o god_n himself_o how_o can_v they_o assist_v at_o all_o the_o public_a service_n where_o saint_n be_v every_o hour_n call_v upon_o without_o say_v amen_o as_o other_o do_v or_o without_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o sect_n separate_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o those_o of_o their_o communion_n it_o be_v therefore_o most_o certain_a that_o these_o sort_n of_o expression_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n be_v only_o sweetning_n in_o term_n to_o draw_v we_o unto_o a_o religious_a service_n which_o he_o know_v we_o believe_v to_o be_v true_o evil_a it_o be_v but_o for_o the_o present_a the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o if_o we_o will_v join_v with_o they_o we_o shall_v not_o pray_v unto_o the_o saint_n if_o we_o please_v but_o when_o once_o man_n be_v engage_v we_o call_v to_o witness_v those_o who_o desert_n we_o if_o they_o do_v not_o oblige_v they_o to_o swear_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o man_n ought_v to_o pray_v unto_o saint_n as_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n make_v by_o th●_n council_n however_o it_o be_v useful_a or_o necessary_a
deny_v that_o much_o be_v lose_v in_o the_o way_n by_o the_o fast_o hold_v which_o the_o people_n take_v upon_o the_o creature_n as_o to_o the_o last_o sweeten_v which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n use_v here_o for_o that_o particular_a worship_n which_o be_v give_v to_o saint_n when_o they_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o be_v jesus_n christ_n sacrifice_v in_o their_o honour_n he_o be_v please_v to_o say_v that_o this_o be_v nothing_o but_o name_a the_o saint_n as_o faithful_a servant_n of_o god_n and_o pray_v god_n that_o he_o will_v become_v propitious_a through_o their_o intercession_n the_o mere_a expression_n of_o offering_n jesus_n christ_n sacrifice_v in_o honour_n of_o the_o saint_n have_v somewhat_o in_o it_o so_o strange_a &_o abhor_v from_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o we_o can_v imagine_v how_o christian_a ear_n can_v become_v accustom_v to_o it_o and_z less_o yet_o how_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n can_v prevail_v with_o themselves_o to_o make_v a_o doctrine_n or_o decree_n of_o it_o we_o have_v a_o little_a more_o enlarge_v upon_o this_o point_n of_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n because_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o religion_n &_o one_o on_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n himself_o have_v most_o insist_v we_o shall_v be_v more_o brief_a upon_o most_o of_o the_o other_o as_o be_v less_o important_a in_o the_o mean_a while_o it_o seem_v already_o apparent_a by_o this_o sole_a article_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n exposition_n have_v nothing_o in_o it_o new_a but_o neat_a and_o delicate_a artifice_n and_o that_o in_o conclusion_n it_o take_v not_o off_o any_o thing_n from_o the_o whole_a force_n of_o our_o principal_a objection_n nor_o from_o the_o number_n of_o important_a controversy_n and_o that_o his_o doctrine_n whatsoever_o artifice_n he_o use_v in_o expression_n overthrow_v all_o along_o according_a to_o we_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n nay_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o cause_n to_o fear_v that_o if_o on_o the_o one_o side_n he_o have_v remove_v some_o question_n as_o it_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v his_o design_n by_o put_v out_o of_o the_o way_n many_o doctrine_n &_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a chur●●_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o on_o the_o other_o give_v place_n to_o some_o new_a difficulty_n for_o that_o ofttimes_o these_o kind_n of_o seem_a sweetning_n which_o be_v only_o in_o some_o term_n or_o in_o matter_n of_o small_a consequence_n do_v not_o at_o all_o satisfy_v a_o man_n and_o only_o raise_v new_a doubt_n in_o stead_n of_o resolve_v the_o old_a the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n pass_v from_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n relic_n v._o of_o image_n and_o relic_n to_o the_o particular_a worship_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n and_o as_o it_o seem_v do_v not_o approve_v all_o that_o be_v see_v to_o be_v practise_v in_o this_o matter_n in_o the_o beginning_n he_o will_v that_o we_o judge_v of_o what_o nature_n the_o honour_n be_v which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n outward_o give_v unto_o saint_n by_o the_o inward_a intention_n she_o have_v for_o they_o ibid._n page_n 30._o ibid._n the_o outward_a worship_n say_v he_o be_v establish_v to_o testify_v the_o inward_a intention_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o be_v not_o this_o in_o a_o manner_n to_o contradict_v himself_o and_o to_o overturn_v or_o confound_v the_o natural_a order_n of_o thing_n for_o if_o the_o worship_n be_v establish_v to_o testify_v the_o inward_a sentiment_n why_o will_v they_o have_v we_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o exterior_a by_o the_o interior_a whereas_o it_o be_v of_o the_o interior_a that_o we_o shall_v judge_v by_o the_o exterior_a or_o wherefore_o shall_v it_o be_v that_o the_o exterior_a answer_n so_o ill_a to_o the_o interior_a and_o that_o notwithstandig_fw-ge there_o be_v nothing_o say_v of_o amendment_n but_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v think_v that_o what_o he_o here_o declare_v unto_o we_o of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o rom●_n church_n do_v warrant_v he_o henc●_n forward_o to_o reduce_v the_o outward_a maid_n of_o honour_n which_o she_o give_v to_o saint●_n unto_o what_o sense_n he_o think_v fit_a to_o gi●_n it_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o f●_n such_o a_o declaration_n to_o change_v th●_n common_a usage_n of_o expression_n a●_n the_o natural_a meaning_n of_o sign_n h●_n will_v they_o for_o instance_n that_o a_o tr●_n a_o pagan_a the_o american_n the_o ignorant_a among_o we_o who_o be_v not_o accustom_v unto_o these_o refining_n of_o intention_n and_o who_o judge_n of_o thing_n one_o by_o the_o common_a use_n and_o by_o the_o common_a notion_n how_o will_v they_o i_o sa●_n that_o all_o the_o world_n behold_v all_o th●_n great_a pomp_n of_o religious_a worship_n which_o be_v give_v to_o saint_n to_o their_o image_n and_o their_o relic_n so_o li●_n the_o honour_n that_o be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o go●_n himself_o without_o take_v this_o worsh●●_n for_o a_o true_a mark_n of_o adoration_n and_o the_o saint_n themselves_o for_o so_o many_o go_n the_o council_n do_v forbid_v say_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n to_o believe_v any_o divinity_n or_o virtue_n in_o image_n for_o which_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o reverence_n due_a to_o they_o or_o for_o which_o any_o honour_n shall_v be_v require_v to_o they_o or_o confidence_n put_v in_o they_o and_o will_v that_o all_o refer_v to_o the_o original_n which_o they_o represent_v which_o do_v distinguish_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n from_o idolater_n because_o very_o far_o from_o helieve_v as_o they_o that_o any_o divinity_n reside_v in_o image_n she_o attribute_n no_o virtue_n unto_o they_o but_o that_o of_o exciting_a the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o original_n here_o be_v it_o notwithstanding_o and_o in_o what_o follow_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v sweeten_v the_o term_n as_o much_o as_o he_o think_v may_v be_v do_v it_o be_v not_o any_o long_o to_o worship_n image_n as_o be_v the_o common_a and_o ordinary_a sense_n of_o the_o principal_a doctor_n who_o have_v write_v for_o this_o worship_n and_o of_o the_o very_a second_o council_n of_o nice_a itself_o it_o be_v no_o long_o to_o serve_v they_o as_o yet_o the_o very_a term_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n run_v but_o only_o to_o honour_v they_o and_o it_o be_v true_a this_o be_v in_o appearance_n a_o step_n towards_o a_o reformation_n and_o a_o sign_n that_o man_n of_o wisdom_n and_o clearness_n such_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n be_v be_v somewhat_o ashamed_a of_o the_o height_n whereunto_o they_o have_v advance_v the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o worship_n but_o in_o the_o conclusion_n it_o be_v still_o notwithstanding_o this_o all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n because_o they_o still_o continue_v to_o give_v the_o same_o religious_a service_n unto_o image_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v pronounce_v anathema_n against_o all_o those_o who_o reject_v this_o worship_n by_o this_o mean_n bold_o condemn_v the_o ancient_a council_n of_o elibery_a that_o of_o constantinople_n consist_v of_o 338._o bishop_n that_o o●_n francfort_n where_o there_o be_v 300_o the_o emperor_n charlemaigne_n and_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o of_o almai●_n of_o that_o time_n and_o of_o a_o long_a time_n after_o 32._o council_n trent_n sess_n 25._o the_o invoc_n sanct_n etc._n etc._n remissiones_fw-la vetustissimum_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o a_o sanctis_fw-la patribas_fw-la comprobatum_fw-la usum_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la imaginum_fw-la earum_fw-la denique_fw-la adoratio_fw-la pluribus_fw-la testimoniis_fw-la comprobatur_fw-la &c_n &c_n tho._n p._n 3_o q._n 25._o art_n 4._o bonav_n cajet_fw-fr etc._n etc._n pon._n ro._n p._n 3._o ord_n ad_fw-la vis_fw-la par_fw-fr pag._n 480._o pag._n 33._o pag._n 32._o which_o all_o reject_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n the_o observation_n that_o be_v print_v with_o the_o text_n of_o the_o very_a council_n of_o trent_n itself_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a and_o approve_a usage_n to_o have_v image_n and_o to_o worship_v they_o these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n and_o they_o authorise_v this_o practice_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n of_o bellarmine_n of_o vasques_n and_o of_o a_o great_a number_n of_o the_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v also_o know_v that_o many_o of_o the_o same_o doctor_n teach_v that_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n to_o worship_v the_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n of_o jesus_n christ_n with_o the_o worship_n of_o latry_n as_o they_o speak_v which_o yet_o be_v the_o divine_a honour_n that_o be_v give_v to_o god_n himself_o it_o be_v see_v with_o what_o devotion_n and_o zeal_n the_o people_n kneel_v before_o the_o cross_n before_o image_n and_o before_o relic_n how_o they_o greet_v they_o how_o they_o kiss_v they_o how_o they_o incense_v they_o how_o they_o fasten_v their_o eye_n
and_o their_o heart_n upon_o they_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v pass_v all_o this_o over_o by_o the_o word_n honour_v it_o be_v not_o any_o long_o the_o cross_n that_o be_v adore_v but_o he_o be_v adore_v before_o the_o cross_n who_o do_v bear_v our_o sin_n upon_o the_o tree_n the_o intention_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o honour_v the_o apostle_n or_o martyr_n as_o to_o honour_v the_o apostle_n or_o martyr_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o image_n which_o do_v show_v nevertheless_o that_o the_o image_n be_v honour_v in_o itself_o and_o that_o unaware_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o image_n as_o if_o it_o be_v animate_v beside_o this_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n it_o be_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o teach_v which_o ordain_v which_o forbid_v and_o never_o any_o one_o word_n of_o god_n never_o the_o least_o commandment_n nor_o the_o least_o example_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v this_o be_v only_o a_o doctrine_n mere_o humane_a so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o be_v true_a that_o god_n have_v command_v this_o worship_n or_o that_o he_o have_v approve_v it_o that_o it_o have_v already_o be_v show_v he_o have_v express_o forbid_v it_o and_o it_o may_v here_o be_v add_v that_o all_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o law_n suppose_v great_a punishment_n against_o those_o who_o violate_v they_o this_o which_o forbid_v to_o make_v image_n and_o to_o serve_v they_o be_v only_o find_v accompany_v with_o threaten_n unto_o child_n child_n of_o they_o who_o shall_v make_v image_n or_o serve_v they_o as_o if_o god_n foresee_v the_o narural_a inclination_n of_o man_n carry_v they_o to_o this_o worship_n will_v more_o particular_o make_v they_o know_v his_o jealousy_n and_o hold_v back_o this_o tendency_n or_o inclination_n by_o the_o terror_n of_o his_o judgement_n they_o think_v to_o avoid_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o commandment_n and_o to_o distinguish_v themselves_o from_o pagan_a idolater_n in_o say_v they_o do_v not_o adore_v the_o image_n and_o that_o they_o believe_v not_o there_o be_v any_o divinity_n or_o virtue_n in_o they_o as_o the_o pagan_n do_v but_o do_v the_o council_n dare_v so_o to_o restrain_v and_o qualify_v if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o say_v the_o express_a commandment_n of_o god_n which_o not_o only_o forbid_v to_o worship_v image_n or_o to_o believe_v any_o virtue_n in_o they_o but_o absolute_o to_o make_v they_o to_o worship_n to_o serve_v and_o to_o bow_v down_o before_o they_o for_o the_o term_n of_o the_o commandment_n have_v precise_o all_o this_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v elsewhere_o 80._o pag._n 80._o upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o himself_o and_o those_o of_o his_o communion_n do_v understand_v these_o word_n according_a to_o the_o letter_n and_o that_o none_o ought_v any_o more_o to_o ask_v why_o they_o hold_v unto_o the_o literal_a sense_n than_o to_o ask_v of_o a_o traveller_n why_o he_o follow_v the_o highway_n and_o that_o it_o be_v those_o that_o have_v recourse_n unto_o a_o figurative_a sense_n and_o who_o follow_v crooked_a way_n that_o shall_v give_v a_o account_n of_o what_o they_o do_v nevertheless_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v without_o comparison_n more_o literal_a than_o that_o of_o the_o new_a and_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o the_o term_n of_o a_o law_n or_o a_o commandment_n shall_v be_v more_o express_a and_o in_o a_o more_o literal_a sense_n than_o those_o of_o a_o mystery_n because_o it_o behove_v necessary_o that_o the_o commandment_n be_v clear_a to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o those_o who_o be_v to_o keep_v it_o may_v plain_o understand_v it_o whereas_o in_o mystery_n it_o be_v see_v almost_o always_o that_o the_o way_n of_o speak_v be_v mystical_a and_o as_o the_o word_n itself_o import_v signify_v something_o hide_v and_o figure_v now_o let_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n tell_v we_o here_o why_o he_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o commandment_n which_o be_v so_o express_v wherefore_o he_o forsake_v this_o highway_n mark_v with_o god_n own_o finger_n to_o fly_v unto_o a_o force_a or_o alienate_v sense_n it_o be_v further_a but_o a_o undue_a imputation_n touch_v heathen_n 96._o athenag_fw-mi in_o apol._n p._n 17._o st._n aug._n in_o psal_n 96._o to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o they_o believe_v that_o their_o false_a divinity_n do_v dwell_v in_o their_o image_n the_o pagan_n do_v not_o yield_v by_o any_o mean_n that_o they_o worship_v wood_n and_o stone_n but_o only_o the_o original_n which_o be_v represent_v by_o they_o they_o do_v also_o make_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o worship_n which_o they_o give_v unto_o the_o great_a god_n and_o those_o which_o they_o give_v unto_o the_o less_o divinity_n neither_o do_v they_o believe_v that_o their_o god_n be_v shut_v up_o in_o their_o shrine_n or_o that_o they_o dwell_v in_o they_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v affirm_v and_o if_o it_o be_v find_v that_o any_o such_o thing_n have_v be_v impute_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n it_o be_v only_o but_o by_o reason_n that_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o people_n go_v much_o far_o than_o the_o opinion_n &_o maxim_n of_o their_o philosopher_n or_o of_o their_o priest_n and_o archpriest_n the_o pagan_n believe_v that_o their_o god_n come_v sometime_o upon_o earth_n but_o that_o they_o make_v their_o residence_n in_o the_o heaven_n or_o in_o some_o place_n separate_v from_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n pallas_n for_o example_n can_v not_o attend_v to_o be_v in_o the_o palladium_n in_o troy_n while_o she_o be_v in_o the_o grecian_a army_n conduct_v the_o chariot_n of_o diomedes_n and_o fight_v against_o the_o trojan_n themselves_o 5._o arnob._n adver_o gent._n li._n 6._o maxim_n tyr._n serm._n 38._o exod._n 32.4_o 5._o the_o pagan_n believe_v only_o in_o general_n that_o there_o be_v fatality_n or_o virtue_n in_o the_o image_n of_o their_o false_a god_n as_o in_o the_o palladium_n the_o virtue_n of_o preserve_v the_o city_n of_o troy_n and_o that_o these_o god_n do_v only_o at_o some_o time_n give_v some_o extraordinary_a mark_n of_o their_o presence_n and_o of_o their_o power_n in_o their_o image_n these_o thing_n be_v too_o well_o know_v to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n no_o more_o do_v the_o israelite_n acknowledge_v that_o they_o do_v worship_v the_o brazen_a serpent_n nor_o the_o golden_a calf_n nor_o that_o the_o golden_a calf_n be_v god_n himself_o but_o they_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o image_n or_o a_o representation_n of_o that_o true_a god_n that_o have_v deliver_v they_o from_o the_o bondage_n of_o egypt_n nevertheless_o the_o pagan_n and_o the_o israelite_n be_v both_o alike_o guilty_a of_o idolatry_n by_o these_o two_o principal_a reason_n the_o one_o that_o their_o false_a worship_n whatever_o it_o be_v or_o whatever_o construction_n they_o give_v it_o be_v condemn_v by_o god_n the_o other_o that_o though_o the_o clear_a among_o the_o heathen_n and_o among_o the_o israelite_n do_v say_v in_o general_a that_o they_o do_v not_o worship_n neither_o the_o image_n of_o false_a god_n nor_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n nor_o the_o golden_a calf_n the_o people_n nevertheless_o do_v not_o forbear_v to_o give_v a_o religious_a service_n unto_o those_o thing_n to_o kneel_v before_o they_o to_o incense_v they_o and_o in_o some_o measure_n to_o fasten_v their_o trust_n and_o affection_n upon_o they_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o believe_v any_o divinity_n in_o the_o image_n it_o be_v true_a except_o haply_o some_o grosser_n spirit_n which_o be_v capable_a of_o think_v any_o thing_n when_o they_o be_v kneel_v before_o they_o and_o be_v possess_v with_o the_o wonder_n that_o have_v be_v do_v by_o the_o image_n but_o how_o can_v it_o so_o formal_o be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v any_o virtue_n in_o they_o for_o she_o desire_v this_o very_a m●●ter_n of_o god_n in_o consecrate_v of_o they_o that_o he_o will_v bless_v they_o that_o h●_n will_v accompany_v they_o with_o hi●_n power_n &_o all_o those_o other_o point_n whic●_n be_v to_o be_v see_v at_o large_a in_o the_o rom●_n pontifical_a the_o book_n of_o the_o rom●_n church_n be_v full_a of_o the_o virtue_n of_o th●_n cross_n of_o the_o miraculous_a image_n o●_n the_o virgin_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n ar●_n of_o the_o mark_n which_o the_o saint_n do_v o●ten_o give_v of_o their_o presence_n and_o of_o the●_n power_n from_o whence_o also_o do_v proceed_v the_o vow_n the_o offering_n t●_n pilgrimage_n authorise_v by_o the_o council_n and_o to_o conclude_v frequentari_fw-la memorias_fw-la frequentari_fw-la all_o those_o affect_v
and_o that_o by_o consequence_n they_o acknowledge_v thereby_o in_o some_o sort_n that_o a_o reformation_n be_v useful_a and_o necessary_a justfication_n vi_o of_o justfication_n the_o three_o part_n the_o method_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v observe_v require_v that_o after_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n we_o examine_v his_o doctrine_n concern_v justification_n the_o merit_n of_o work_n of_o satisfaction_n purgatory_n and_o of_o indulgence_n it_o be_v true_a as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v that_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a thing_n which_o give_v occasion_n of_o reformation_n to_o our_o father_n very_o few_o be_v ignorant_a what_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n at_o that_o time_n on_o one_o hand_n present_v itself_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n the_o necessity_n of_o satisfy_v god_n justice_n in_o this_o life_n or_o endure_v the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n after_o death_n to_o complete_a what_o be_v want_v of_o this_o satisfaction_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n be_v to_o be_v see_v a_o extraordinary_a irregulatity_n in_o the_o life_n and_o manner_n as_o well_o of_o the_o clergy_n as_o of_o the_o people_n and_o by_o consequence_n no_o likelihood_n of_o salvation_n neither_o by_o work_n nor_o by_o those_o satisfaction_n and_o in_o fine_a there_o appear_v no_o other_o object_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n but_o purgatory_n or_o hell_n in_o this_o state_n of_o the_o church_n the_o pope_n open_v the_o treasure_n of_o his_o indulgency_n distribute_v his_o agnus_n his_o bead_n and_o relic_n and_o prescribe_v certain_a number_n of_o pater_fw-la noster_n and_o ave_fw-la mary_n of_o station_n of_o visit_n of_o church_n of_o pilgrimage_n fast_n pennance_n of_o maceration_n and_o mortification_n with_o which_o and_o with_o the_o help_n of_o pardon_n dispensation_n and_o indulgence_n which_o be_v purchase_v at_o a_o dear_a rate_n those_o who_o have_v they_o be_v not_o only_o justify_v themselves_o but_o help_v to_o justify_v other_o deliver_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n and_o acquire_v for_o they_o a_o great_a degree_n of_o blessedness_n or_o a_o augmentation_n of_o glory_n as_o the_o council_n speak_v our_o father_n do_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o abuse_n in_o all_o these_o thing_n and_o that_o this_o doctrine_n which_o possess_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n and_o that_o make_v up_o the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o piety_n do_v overthrow_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n which_o do_v essential_o consist_v in_o place_v our_o chief_a confidence_n in_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o far_o in_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o his_o will_n and_o not_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o man_n it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o since_o the_o reformation_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o do_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o little_a more_o reserve_v than_o she_o be_v before_o as_o well_o as_o to_o expression_n in_o regard_n of_o her_o doctrine_n as_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o practice_n and_o the_o very_a use_n of_o indulgence_n and_o they_o be_v behold_v to_o we_o for_o it_o which_o do_v very_o much_o serve_v for_o the_o justification_n of_o our_o first_o reformer_n but_o the_o abuse_n be_v yet_o too_o great_a in_o one_o and_o the_o other_o for_o the_o corrupt_a of_o piety_n and_o scandalize_a of_o true_a christian_n those_o who_o only_o consider_v the_o controversy_n of_o justification_n at_o a_o distance_n or_o transient_o without_o search_v into_o the_o ground_n and_o consequence_n will_v not_o it_o may_v be_v at_o first_o think_v it_o so_o important_a as_o it_o be_v but_o it_o be_v of_o so_o great_a moment_n what_o herein_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o those_o who_o be_v well_o inform_v among_o we_o that_o as_o to_o the_o contrary_a we_o shall_v not_o stick_v here_o to_o maintain_v that_o the_o difference_n of_o belief_n which_o do_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o this_o point_n be_v of_o so_o great_a consequence_n unto_o religion_n that_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o great_a let_v we_o therefore_o be_v permit_v according_a to_o the_o liberty_n that_o dispute_n do_v require_v to_o deny_v here_o formal_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v aver_v in_o something_o a_o uncertain_a manner_n that_o there_o be_v but_o few_o learned_a man_n of_o our_o side_n as_o he_o speak_v but_o do_v confess_v that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n about_o this_o point_n and_o that_o this_o difficulty_n be_v not_o any_o long_o consider_v as_o much_o material_a by_o the_o most_o intelligent_a person_n among_o we_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v not_o cite_v one_o of_o those_o learned_a man_n nor_o one_o of_o those_o intelligent_a person_n unto_o who_o he_o impute_v these_o sort_n of_o sentiment_n as_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o business_n do_v require_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n of_o our_o church_n which_o contain_v the_o general_n belief_n of_o those_o of_o our_o communion_n explain_v itself_o to_o the_o contrary_a upon_o this_o point_n as_o thorough_o as_o may_v be_v it_o confirm_v the_o very_a doctrine_n which_o the_o first_o reformer_n teach_v declare_v in_o express_a term_n that_o how_o little_a soever_o we_o swerve_v from_o this_o foundation_n we_o can_v never_o find_v any_o ease_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v continual_o toss_v with_o inquietude_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n itself_o acknowledge_v the_o importance_n of_o this_o controversy_n first_o in_o that_o it_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o from_o the_o first_o as_o one_o of_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o schism_n and_o which_o do_v most_o deserve_v the_o care_n of_o the_o say_a council_n and_o in_o the_o second_o place_n by_o the_o prodigious_a length_n of_o its_o decree_n and_o by_o the_o vast_a number_n of_o its_o canon_n and_o anathema_n much_o great_a upon_o this_o point_n than_o upon_o any_o other_o in_o sum_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o principal_a point_n but_o it_o be_v one_o of_o they_o which_o be_v most_o such_o the_o other_o for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v only_o regard_v some_o part_n of_o religion_n error_n do_v corrupt_a but_o that_o part_n and_o do_v not_o influence_n the_o other_o if_o we_o may_v so_o speak_v the_o worship_v the_o host_n for_o example_n be_v without_o doubt_n one_o of_o the_o most_o essential_a point_n in_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o find_v any_o mean_a because_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v worship_v or_o not_o worship_v which_o be_v the_o first_o and_o great_a act_n of_o religion_n nevertheless_o this_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a point_n a_o capital_a error_n indeed_o for_o they_o who_o be_v deceive_v in_o it_o but_o which_o do_v nothing_o or_o change_v nothing_o in_o all_o the_o other_o fundamental_a point_n but_o who_o speak_v of_o justification_n speak_v of_o the_o mean_n of_o our_o salvation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o important_a than_o not_o to_o be_v deceive_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o such_o a_o matter_n because_o if_o a_o man_n fail_v to_o take_v the_o right_a way_n he_o fall_v from_o error_n to_o error_n and_o the_o very_a true_a essence_n of_o religion_n be_v change_v and_o alter_v this_o truth_n will_v plain_o appear_v by_o the_o bare_a compare_v of_o our_o doctrine_n with_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o do_v believe_v that_o our_o justification_n do_v alone_o consist_v herein_o that_o have_v deserve_v death_n jesus_n christ_n die_v for_o we_o and_o satisfy_v the_o justice_n of_o god_n the_o father_n for_o we_o who_o for_o the_o love_n of_o his_o son_n pardon_v all_o our_o sin_n in_o general_a unite_n we_o unto_o he_o by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n and_o impute_v his_o righteousness_n and_o obedience_n unto_o we_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n itself_o as_o though_o we_o have_v suffer_v it_o in_o our_o own_o person_n we_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v god_n himself_o that_o do_v beget_v and_o strengthen_v this_o faith_n in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o by_o the_o outward_a ministry_n of_o his_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o shall_v be_v explain_v in_o what_o follow_v upon_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o this_o faith_n be_v not_o a_o dead_a or_o idle_a faith_n but_o a_o live_a faith_n and_o work_v by_o love_n and_o by_o all_o sort_n of_o good_a work_n and_o that_o these_o work_n be_v very_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o a_o inseparable_a consequent_a of_o that_o faith_n which_o justify_v we_o but_o that_o it_o be_v only_o of_o pure_a grace_n and_o by_o the_o alone_a merit_n of_o the_o death_n of_o j●sus_n christ_n that_o
these_o gentleman_n do_v in_o some_o sort_n salve_v the_o former_a of_o these_o inconvenience_n in_o declare_v as_o they_o do_v that_o they_o do_v not_o attribute_v any_o merit_n unto_o work_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o free_a promise_n which_o god_n have_v make_v to_o reward_v they_o produce_v they_o himself_o in_o we_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o beside_o the_o moderate_a person_n among_o they_o do_v not_o dissent_v but_o that_o these_o sort_n of_o expression_n of_o merit_n may_v very_o well_o be_v wave_v and_o that_o we_o be_v more_o humble_a and_o more_o safe_a as_o also_o on_o our_o part_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v be_v suffer_v in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o they_o now_o explain_v they_o and_o it_o may_v be_v this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v here_o understand_v when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o learned_a of_o our_o communion_n do_v not_o believe_v some_o of_o our_o dispute_n upon_o this_o point_n to_o be_v very_o material_a what_o be_v here_o most_o mysterious_a be_v that_o upon_o this_o expression_n that_o good_a work_n do_v merit_v eternal_a life_n there_o be_v ●ounded_v two_o other_o doctrine_n which_o be_v very_o evil_a the_o first_o be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o content_v to_o command_v work_n that_o be_v true_o good_a and_o command_v as_o to_o worship_n god_n only_o to_o serve_v none_o but_o he_o to_o obey_v our_o superior_n and_o last_o to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o which_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o christian_a religion_n but_o they_o have_v bring_v in_o the_o practice_n of_o vow_n of_o abstinence_n of_o pilgrimage_n maceration_n and_o all_o those_o other_o work_v which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v call_v pennance_n because_o in_o very_a deed_n god_n have_v not_o require_v any_o of_o that_o nature_n the_o other_o evil_a doctrine_n which_o proceed_v from_o the_o merit_n of_o work_n be_v that_o of_o satisfaction_n of_o purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n for_o those_o who_o do_v these_o work_n of_o penance_n believe_v they_o satisfy_v at_o least_o in_o some_o part_n the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o they_o call_v they_o satisfaction_n and_o those_o who_o do_v none_o of_o they_o believe_v themselves_o destine_v to_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n and_o have_v recourse_n unto_o indulgence_n to_o deliver_v they_o indulgence_n viii_o satisfaction_n purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n the_o doctrine_n of_o satisfaction_n be_v in_o reality_n so_o evil_a according_a to_o we_o that_o it_o do_v entire_o vitiate_v all_o that_o be_v good_a in_o that_o of_o justification_n and_o of_o good_a work_n one_o will_v say_v that_o it_o be_v another_o gospel_n a_o discourse_n mere_o humane_a the_o several_a part_n whereof_o do_v so_o ill_o agree_v together_o very_o far_o be_v the_o whole_a article_n from_o be_v conform_v unto_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n 103.12_o es_fw-ge 1.18_o psal_n 32.12_o ps_n 103.12_o the_o scripture_n reiterate_v unto_o we_o throughout_o that_o god_n do_v pardon_v we_o our_o sin_n for_o his_o son_n sake_n that_o if_o our_o sin_n be_v red_a than_o scarlet_a he_o make_v they_o white_a as_o snow_n that_o he_o impute_v they_o not_o unto_o we_o that_o he_o cover_v they_o that_o he_o blot_v they_o out_o that_o he_o separate_v they_o from_o we_o as_o far_o as_o the_o east_n be_v from_o the_o west_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o god_n do_v pardon_v our_o sin_n but_o upon_o such_o condition_n under_o such_o law_n and_o with_o such_o reservation_n as_o he_o please_v that_o he_o confer_v a_o entire_a abolition_n of_o all_o sin_n commit_v for_o baptism_n but_o as_o for_o those_o that_o be_v commit_v after_o baptism_n god_n force_v by_o our_o ingratitude_n change_v the_o eternal_a pain_n into_o a_o temporal_a this_o be_v what_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n call_v remit_v the_o sin_n and_o retain_v the_o punishment_n this_o be_v to_o say_v that_o god_n do_v pardon_n and_o he_o do_v not_o pardon_n or_o at_o least_o that_o he_o do_v not_o full_o pardon_v our_o sin_n all_o blot_v out_o as_o they_o be_v do_v nevertheless_o cry_v for_o vengeance_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v atone_v for_o they_o nor_o that_o we_o repent_v and_o endeavour_v to_o amend_v and_o to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n if_o together_o herewith_o we_o do_v not_o work_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n call_v painful_a and_o laborious_a or_o if_o we_o suffer_v not_o temporal_a pain_n either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o after_o death_n this_o be_v what_o have_v be_v already_o touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o only_o injurious_a unto_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o unto_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o condition_n and_o restriction_n which_o she_o presume_v to_o bring_v thereunto_o but_o she_o contradict_v her_o very_a self_n pull_v down_o with_o one_o hand_n what_o she_o build_v up_o with_o another_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n jesus_n christ_n have_v full_o pay_v the_o price_n of_o our_o ransom_n there_o be_v nothing_o want_v of_o this_o payment_n his_o justice_n be_v impute_v unto_o we_o our_o sin_n be_v blot_v out_o by_o his_o blood_n in_o a_o word_n jesus_n christ_n have_v full_o satisfy_v for_o we_o and_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n 61._o pag._n 60_o &_o 61._o the_o justice_n of_o god_n and_o a_o certain_a way_n which_o he_o have_v appoint_v will_v have_v we_o not_o to_o suffer_v ourselves_o for_o our_o sin_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n will_v salve_v this_o contradiction_n by_o say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o these_o pain_n which_o god_n reserve_v be_v only_o to_o keep_v we_o in_o our_o duty_n within_o the_o hand_n of_o justice_n as_o he_o speak_v and_o not_o to_o satisfy_v for_o our_o sin_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o he_o make_v a_o kind_n of_o protestation_n that_o if_o after_o the_o explication_n which_o he_o give_v in_o that_o sense_n we_o shall_v object_v unto_o those_o of_o his_o communion_n that_o they_o do_v prejudice_n unto_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o must_v forget_v what_o he_o have_v already_o tell_v we_o that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v pay_v the_o full_a price_n of_o our_o ransom_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o if_o we_o yet_o object_v to_o they_o that_o they_o believe_v they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v of_o themselves_o as_o to_o some_o part_n of_o the_o pain_n which_o be_v due_a to_o their_o sin_n he_o may_v bold_o say_v that_o the_o contrary_n do_v appear_v by_o the_o maxim_n which_o he_o have_v establish_v unto_o which_o he_o add_v for_o a_o conclusion_n that_o what_o they_o call_v satisfaction_n with_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v nothing_o after_o all_z but_o a_o application_n of_o the_o infinite_a satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o may_v plain_o be_v see_v by_o these_o last_o expression_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n that_o he_o seem_v to_o do_v like_o the_o dove_n which_o return_v unto_o the_o ark_n not_o know_v where_o to_o rest_v her_o foot_n after_o all_z what_o they_o call_v satisfaction_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o application_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n this_o expression_n have_v something_o in_o it_o improper_a and_o encumber_v because_o it_o can_v be_v any_o thing_n but_o faith_n only_o which_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o can_v apply_v unto_o we_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o act_n of_o love_n and_o reliance_n it_o can_v proper_o be_v say_v that_o any_o work_v do_v by_o we_o or_o that_o any_o pain_n that_o we_o suffer_v can_v be_v the_o application_n of_o the_o obedience_n which_o jesus_n christ_n render_v unto_o his_o father_n and_o of_o the_o pain_n which_o he_o suffer_v for_o we_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n after_o have_v defend_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v the_o opinion_n and_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v give_v to_o understand_v that_o after_o all_z what_o they_o call_v satisfaction_n be_v not_o proper_o satisfaction_n that_o they_o themselves_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o can_v satisfy_v as_o they_o just_a now_o say_v more_o express_o and_o that_o in_o conclusion_n there_o be_v nothing_o real_o but_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v call_v by_o this_o name_n this_o doctrine_n be_v sound_a and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o come_v unto_o we_o or_o rather_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o this_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o main_a if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v still_o allow_v to_o stand_v that_o be_v to_o say_v if_o that_o be_v the_o supreme_a
our_o king_n have_v not_o set_v some_o bound_n to_o the_o enterprise_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n as_o for_o order_n or_o order_n for_o the_o council_n set_v down_o seven_o under_o this_o name_n to_o wit_n the_o priest_n the_o deacon_n order_n order_n the_o subdeacon_n the_o acolyte_n the_o exorcist_n the_o reader_n and_o the_o porter_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n speak_v only_o a_o word_n of_o order_n in_o general_a as_o he_o have_v do_v of_o marriage_n to_o put_v it_o into_o the_o number_n of_o sacrament_n it_o be_v true_a as_o he_o say_v that_o we_o hold_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o a_o sacred_a thing_n take_v the_o term_n in_o a_o general_a sense_n we_o practise_v the_o ceremony_n of_o imposition_n of_o hand_n as_o it_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o we_o can_v agree_v that_o order_n or_o order_n be_v a_o true_a sacrament_n as_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n as_o well_o for_o that_o in_o order_n there_o be_v no_o element_n or_o visible_a sign_n no_o more_o than_o in_o marriage_n and_o in_o confession_n as_o also_o because_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o sacrament_n ought_v to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o church_n and_o order_n be_v not_o it_o be_v in_o this_o point_n also_o the_o interest_n of_o rome_n that_o make_v order_n a_o true_a sacrament_n to_o the_o end_n she_o may_v withdraw_v all_o the_o great_a body_n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n and_o thereby_o make_v unto_o herself_o proper_a subject_n of_o other_o prince_n people_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o state_n and_o kingdom_n as_o a_o particular_a kingdom_n or_o hierarchy_n apart_o not_o only_o distinct_a from_o the_o temporal_a monarchy_n but_o superior_a and_o overrule_a king_n themselves_o many_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v upon_o this_o article_n to_o show_v principal_o that_o the_o priesthood_n and_o the_o sacrifice_a of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v a_o invention_n pure_o humane_a and_o that_o it_o have_v no_o example_n nor_o any_o foundation_n in_o the_o gospel_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a priesthood_n where_o there_o be_v not_o a_o true_a sacrifice_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n it_o shall_v be_v make_v appear_v that_o there_o be_v none_o such_o in_o the_o mass_n but_o in_o this_o place_n we_o will_v be_v content_a to_o follow_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n who_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o engage_v in_o all_o these_o question_n whether_o it_o be_v that_o he_o desert_n they_o tacit_o by_o his_o silence_n or_o that_o he_o think_v they_o to_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o school_n than_o for_o public_a edification_n or_o last_o that_o he_o hasten_v to_o pass_v unto_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n where_o he_o believe_v he_o may_v enlarge_v himself_o with_o less_o disadvantage_n the_o five_o part_n we_o be_v say_v he_o now_o at_o last_o body_n x._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n &_o the_o manner_n how_o she_o understand_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n arrive_v at_o the_o question_n of_o the_o eucharist_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v after_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o bad_a way_n now_o we_o be_v get_v a_o little_a more_o at_o large_a on_o the_o whole_a there_o be_v this_o difference_n betwixt_o all_o these_o question_n of_o the_o worship_v of_o saint_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n of_o satisfaction_n of_o purgatory_n of_o indulgence_n of_o the_o number_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n whereof_o we_o have_v hitherto_o treat_v and_o this_o of_o the_o eucharist_n whereon_o at_o present_a we_o enter_v that_o in_o all_o the_o other_o there_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v any_o footstep_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n nor_o in_o the_o very_a first_o age_n of_o christianity_n whereas_o upon_o the_o question_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o roman_a church_n pretend_v that_o she_o have_v the_o scripture_n itself_o on_o her_o side_n therefore_o also_o it_o be_v that_o whereas_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v but_o light_o pass_v over_o all_o the_o rest_n here_o say_v he_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a more_o ample_o to_o explain_v our_o doctrine_n and_o here_o the_o better_a to_o accommodate_v ourselves_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n method_n as_o we_o have_v do_v upon_o the_o other_o article_n we_o will_v distinct_o examine_v all_o the_o several_a head_n of_o which_o he_o make_v so_o many_o section_n 1._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o how_o she_o understand_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n 2._o how_o she_o understand_v these_o other_o word_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o me._n 3._o the_o exposition_n which_o she_o make_v of_o our_o belief_n as_o to_o the_o reality_n 4._o transubstantiation_n and_o adoration_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o sign_n 5._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n 6._o what_o the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n when_o he_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n offer_v himself_o once_o 7._o the_o reflection_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n make_v upon_o this_o doctrine_n 8._o and_o last_o the_o point_n of_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v only_o consider_v as_o a_o sequel_n or_o consequent_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n we_o will_v touch_v each_o of_o these_o head_n with_o as_o much_o brevity_n as_o shall_v be_v possible_a the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n begin_v with_o this_o proposition_n that_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v firm_o establish_v by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o reason_n which_o he_o give_v thereof_o be_v because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v understand_v they_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n and_o here_o it_o be_v that_o he_o say_v what_o have_v be_v allege_v elsewhere_o upon_o another_o subject_n that_o you_o must_v no_o more_o ask_v they_o wherefore_o they_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o literal_a sense_n than_o of_o a_o traveller_n why_o he_o follow_v the_o high_a way_n let_v any_o one_o judge_n of_o the_o sequel_n by_o the_o beginning_n the_o question_n betwixt_o we_o be_v whether_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v true_o and_o real_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o whether_o they_o be_v so_o only_o in_o the_o mystery_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n this_o be_v my_o body_n aught_o to_o be_v understand_v literal_o or_o figurative_o whether_o they_o true_o signify_v a_o real_a presence_n as_o they_o speak_v or_o a_o presence_n mystical_a and_o of_o virtue_n for_o it_o be_v all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v without_o any_o other_o pretext_n that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v firm_o establish_v upon_o these_o word_n because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v understand_v they_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n that_o be_v it_o be_v so_o because_o i_o understand_v it_o so_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o decide_v the_o question_n by_o the_o thing_n itself_o which_o be_v in_o question_n or_o that_o he_o do_v give_v we_o his_o sense_n &_o his_o will_n for_o a_o reason_n to_o have_v the_o liberty_n to_o speak_v as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v we_o must_v lay_v it_o as_o a_o principle_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o one_o shall_v not_o or_o at_o least_o that_o may_v not_o be_v take_v literal_o then_o may_v she_o take_v literal_o what_o our_o saviour_n say_v elsewhere_o 19.5_o john_n 6.35_o &_o 19.5_o that_o he_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o heaven_n or_o that_o he_o be_v a_o vine_n and_o his_o disciple_n be_v the_o branch_n and_o that_o none_o shall_v be_v allow_v to_o inquire_v how_o it_o may_v be_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n judge_v true_o enough_o that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o proposition_n maintainable_a enter_v upon_o two_o other_o conceit_n more_o reasonable_a on_o the_o one_o side_n he_o engage_v we_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n aught_o to_o be_v take_v in_o a_o figurative_a sense_n on_o the_o other_o he_o engage_v to_o prove_v himself_o 80_o pa._n 80_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v take_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n it_o be_v their_o part_n say_v he_o who_o have_v recourse_n to_o figurative_a sense_n to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o what_o they_o do_v we_o
will_v therefore_o here_o set_v down_o some_o of_o the_o reason_n which_o we_o have_v for_o the_o figurative_a sense_n see_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v require_v it_o of_o we_o and_o afterward_o we_o will_v examine_v those_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v allege_v for_o the_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n in_o the_o first_o place_n whensoever_o any_o great_a of_o a_o mystery_n and_o of_o a_o sacrament_n 〈…〉_o and_o the_o common_a use_n to_o take_v the_o oppression_n and_o the_o thing_n themselves_o mystical_o and_o figurative_o the_o very_a word_n itself_o mystery_n do_v lead_v we_o thereto_o otherwise_o it_o be_v no_o more_o a_o mystery_n let_v any_o examine_v general_o all_o the_o sacrament_n as_o well_o of_o the_o old_a as_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o one_o except_v no_o not_o the_o very_a ceremony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o where_o there_o be_v any_o visible_a sign_n as_o the_o passover_n and_o circumcision_n under_o the_o law_n baptism_n under_o the_o gospel_n that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v call_v confirmation_n and_o extreme_a unction_n through_o all_o will_v be_v find_v thing_n and_o word_n which_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o a_o mystical_a and_o a_o figurative_a sense_n but_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v more_o particular_o wherefore_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n st._n austin_n and_o theodoret_n bonif._n aug._n epist_n 23._o ad_fw-la bonif._n answer_v for_o we_o the_o first_o say_v that_o it_o be_v because_o of_o the_o relation_n which_o the_o sacrament_n have_v to_o the_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sacrament_n and_o the_o latter_a to_o keep_v we_o from_o rest_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v see_v 1._o theodoret_n dial_n 1._o and_o that_o as_o jesus_n christ_n say_v that_o he_o be_v bread_n and_o a_o stock_n or_o vine_n so_o be_v honour_n the_o symbol_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n the_o force_n of_o these_o testimony_n be_v not_o here_o urge_v as_o to_o the_o main_a question_n they_o be_v only_o allege_v to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o use_n wherefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o sign_n do_v bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o a_o kind_n of_o mystical_a and_o figurative_a way_n of_o speak_v to_o elevate_v our_o spirit_n and_o our_o heart_n above_o the_o visible_a sign_n 2._o we_o know_v in_o general_a that_o all_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v full_a of_o these_o sort_n of_o figurative_a expression_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o style_n of_o the_o eastern_a nation_n in_o those_o time_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v or_o that_o god_n judge_v this_o style_n the_o fit_a to_o exercise_v our_o faith_n we_o see_v that_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o continue_a succession_n of_o figure_n 15.3_o john_n 6.35_o joh._n 15.3_o every_o one_o know_v those_o just_a now_o mention_v i_o be_o the_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n i_o be_o the_o vine_n the_o rock_n be_v christ_n 6._o 1_o cor._n 10.4_o mat._n 5.29_o de_fw-fr doctrine_n christ_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 6._o if_o thy_o eye_n offend_v thou_o pluck_v it_o out_o and_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o other_o now_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v of_o we_o how_o we_o can_v distinguish_v betwixt_o figurative_a expression_n and_o those_o which_o be_v proper_a and_o literal_a st._n austin_n here_o again_o answer_v for_o we_o that_o what_o seem_v to_o offend_v good_a manner_n or_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n aught_o to_o be_v take_v in_o a_o figurative_a sense_n and_o yet_o more_o express_o that_o this_o which_o jesus_n christ_n say_v that_o we_o must_v eat_v his_o body_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n appear_v a_o wicked_a thing_n be_v therefore_o a_o figure_n we_o press_v not_o still_o this_o passage_n as_o to_o the_o main_a question_n we_o only_o allege_v it_o to_o make_v the_o reason_n which_o we_o have_v for_o the_o figurative_a sense_n better_o apprehend_v 3._o final_o what_o can_v there_o be_v more_o natural_a and_o more_o reasonable_a than_o to_o understand_v the_o scripture_n by_o the_o scripture_n itself_o the_o obscure_a place_n by_o they_o which_o be_v more_o plain_a those_o which_o have_v a_o double_a meaning_n by_o they_o which_o have_v but_o a_o single_a the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n entitle_v lawful_a prejudices_fw-la lay_v down_o this_o maxim_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o book_n that_o when_o there_o be_v any_o passage_n which_o may_v admit_v of_o a_o double_a sense_n that_o must_v be_v take_v which_o agree_v best_a with_o the_o whole_a and_o which_o be_v the_o most_o reasonable_a there_o be_v but_o one_o passage_n only_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o favour_v the_o literal_a sense_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n give_v to_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o if_o you_o eat_v not_o the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o and_o this_o very_a expression_n st._n austin_n note_n aught_o to_o be_v understand_v figurative_o whereas_o there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o other_o which_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v no_o more_o with_o we_o but_o by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o poor_a you_o shall_v have_v always_o with_o you_o 26.11_o mat._n 26.11_o but_o i_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v always_o and_o if_o i_o depart_v i_o will_v send_v the_o comforter_n unto_o you_o and_o so_o many_o more_o 16._o joh._n 16._o that_o make_v we_o daily_o say_v in_o the_o creed_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v etc._n etc._n the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o eucharist_n require_v that_o we_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o and_o to_o show_v forth_o his_o death_n till_o he_o come_v to_o be_v in_o heaven_n corporal_o and_o upon_o earth_n by_o representation_n be_v not_o two_o sense_n repugnant_a but_o not_o to_o be_v any_o more_o with_o we_o or_o to_o be_v corporal_o in_o heaven_n and_o yet_o to_o be_v every_o day_n upon_o earth_n in_o man_n hand_n in_o his_o proper_a body_n be_v two_o term_n contradictory_n and_o incompatible_a it_o be_v therefore_o natural_a to_o take_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n in_o a_o mystical_a and_o figurative_a sense_n which_o alone_o do_v perfect_o agree_v with_o all_o the_o other_o passage_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v suppose_v that_o there_o be_v two_o divers_a way_n according_a unto_o which_o she_o pretend_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n may_v be_v present_a in_o heaven_n and_o upon_o earth_n the_o one_o with_o his_o dimension_n and_o his_o exterior_a quality_n such_o as_o he_o be_v see_v upon_o earth_n and_o it_o be_v after_o this_o manner_n that_o she_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v no_o more_o with_o we_o or_o that_o he_o be_v only_o in_o heaven_n the_o other_o without_o his_o dimension_n and_o exterior_a quality_n as_o she_o pretend_v that_o he_o be_v under_o the_o covert_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o this_o be_v to_o answer_v here_o punctual_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n we_o formal_o deny_v this_o second_o manner_n of_o be_v bodily_a in_o a_o place_n &_o it_o be_v not_o contest_v but_o that_o nature_n the_o sense_n &_o reason_n far_o from_o teach_v any_o such_o thing_n cry_v loud_o against_o it_o it_o will_v therefore_o high_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n upon_o the_o whole_a case_n to_o establish_v this_o second_o manner_n of_o be_v in_o a_o place_n by_o some_o passage_n the_o sense_n whereof_o be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o question_n and_o till_o that_o be_v do_v it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v that_o the_o figurative_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v the_o true_a and_o genuine_a sense_n the_o first_o and_o the_o only_a that_o present_v itself_o unto_o the_o mind_n we_o may_v here_o add_v many_o other_o reason_n as_o to_o the_o main_a to_o make_v appear_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v not_o only_o above_o reason_n as_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n but_o direct_o against_o reason_n and_o which_o in_o fine_a destroy_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o sense_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v it_o that_o our_o lord_n make_v use_v of_o 2._o john_n 20.27_o theodoret_n dial._n 2._o to_o prove_v unto_o th●mas_n the_o truth_n of_o his_o presence_n as_o the_o church_n also_o have_v since_o do_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o true_a humane_a body_n against_o the_o eutychian_o but_o this_o will_v be_v
of_o his_o love_n and_o the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n very_o far_o from_o acknowledge_v that_o to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n as_o our_o lord_n require_v suppose_v his_o absence_n turn_v the_o thing_n to_o the_o clear_a contrary_n so_o as_o to_o infer_v that_o this_o very_a remembrance_n shall_v be_v ground_v upon_o the_o real_a presence_n to_o this_o purpose_n he_o here_o bring_v in_o again_o the_o comparison_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n as_o say_v he_o the_o jew_n in_o eat_v the_o peace-offering_n do_v call_v to_o remembrance_n that_o they_o be_v offer_v for_o they_o so_o in_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o sacrifice_n we_o ought_v to_o call_v to_o remembrance_n that_o he_o die_v for_o we_o and_o from_o thence_o he_o pass_v unto_o a_o kind_n of_o rhetorical_a rapture_n upon_o the_o tender_a remembrance_n which_o the_o tomb_n of_o the_o father_n excite_v in_o the_o child_n heart_n first_o as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o comparison_n we_o have_v already_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o proof_n and_o that_o upon_o the_o whole_a case_n the_o relation_n there_o be_v of_o the_o law_n to_o the_o gospel_n be_v no_o reason_n that_o we_o shall_v take_v all_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n in_o the_o gospel_n as_o we_o do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n matter_n in_o the_o law_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o our_o spiritual_a eat_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n answer_v unto_o the_o oral_a eat_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n but_o there_o be_v yet_o more_o in_o it_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n only_o speak_v of_o peace-offering_n and_o remember_v not_o himself_o of_o what_o he_o himself_o have_v say_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n offer_v for_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o true_a figure_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n may_v not_o his_o argument_n be_v return_v back_o against_o himself_o that_o as_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o eat_v of_o this_o expiatory_a sacrifice_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o fail_v not_o to_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v offer_v for_o their_o sin_n in_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v eat_v the_o proper_a flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o sacrifice_n to_o put_v we_o in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n we_o have_v this_o advantage_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o eat_v nothing_o instead_o of_o this_o sacrifice_n whereas_o we_o eat_v the_o holy_a symbol_n which_o lively_o represent_v unto_o we_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o body_n break_v for_o we_o and_o his_o blood_n pour_v out_o for_o the_o expiation_n of_o our_o sin_n further_o what_o be_v our_o manner_n and_o our_o education_n that_o to_o put_v we_o in_o a_o tender_a remembrance_n of_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n we_o must_v needs_o eat_v his_o proper_a flesh_n with_o our_o bodily_a mouth_n or_o rather_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o remembrance_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o apprehension_n excite_v by_o the_o object_n which_o affect_v the_o sense_n have_v the_o manner_n in_o which_o it_o be_v believe_v they_o eat_v this_o flesh_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n any_o thing_n which_o do_v more_o affect_v the_o sense_n than_o we_o see_v that_o we_o eat_v it_o both_o one_o and_o the_o other_o under_o the_o same_o kind_n or_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n we_o will_v not_o here_o inquire_v whether_o it_o excite_v a_o real_a tenderness_n to_o conceive_v that_o we_o effective_o eat_v the_o flesh_n which_o we_o love_v and_o adore_v or_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v not_o by_o degree_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o be_v become_v accustom_a unto_o this_o conceit_n which_o of_o itself_o do_v stir_v up_o contrary_a affection_n it_o will_v be_v only_o needful_a to_o compare_v the_o manner_n how_o they_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o that_o wherein_o they_o administer_v they_o in_o our_o church_n to_o judge_v which_o of_o the_o two_o be_v most_o capable_a to_o entertain_v a_o true_a remembrance_n of_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v she_o hold_v the_o proper_a flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n under_o the_o sacred_a covert_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o it_o be_v under_o a_o mystical_a tomb_n or_o under_o dead_a sign_n but_o a_o live_n and_o vivify_a flesh_n etc._n etc._n these_o be_v the_o term_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n which_o form_n a_o notion_n or_o idea_n very_o perplex_v and_o contradictory_n as_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v a_o dead_a body_n full_a of_o life_n and_o the_o fountain_n of_o life_n under_o the_o covert_n of_o death_n which_o be_v the_o very_a cause_n that_o this_o idea_n be_v so_o confuse_v be_v not_o without_o much_o difficulty_n receive_v into_o the_o mind_n and_o that_o it_o there_o make_v the_o less_o impression_n or_o at_o least_o do_v not_o make_v so_o lively_a a_o impression_n only_o of_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n of_o which_o the_o main_a question_n here_o be_v whereas_o among_o we_o where_o we_o only_o regard_v the_o bread_n break_v and_o the_o wine_n pour_v out_o but_o as_o a_o image_n and_o representation_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n break_v for_o we_o and_o his_o blood_n shed_v for_o we_o this_o image_n do_v give_v unto_o we_o a_o clear_a and_o distinct_a idea_n of_o the_o death_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o we_o which_o be_v proper_o the_o effect_n which_o our_o lord_n will_v produce_v in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o priest_n that_o say_v mass_n or_o that_o consecrate_v often_o say_v it_o alone_o most_o common_o very_o low_a and_o always_o in_o latin_a which_o be_v not_o at_o all_o the_o language_n of_o the_o people_n the_o consecration_n be_v do_v if_o he_o give_v the_o host_n for_o every_o one_o know_v that_o there_o be_v infinite_a mass_n without_o communicant_n he_o say_v not_o unto_o they_o who_o do_v receive_v it_o that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v break_v for_o they_o which_o be_v proper_o what_o he_o ought_v to_o say_v unto_o they_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o imprint_v well_o in_o their_o mind_n the_o idea_n of_o his_o death_n and_o to_o excite_v in_o their_o heart_n a_o pure_a sense_n and_o such_o which_o become_v heart_n engage_v in_o love_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o this_o divine_a saviour_n but_o it_o be_v only_o say_v unto_o they_o by_o form_n of_o a_o petition_n which_o be_v make_v for_o they_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n keep_v or_o preserve_v their_o soul_n unto_o eternal_a life_n and_o though_o we_o do_v not_o here_o repeat_v this_o form_n of_o petition_n to_o condemn_v it_o because_o it_o be_v good_a and_o of_o ancient_a use_n yet_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o more_o self-interessed_n consideration_n which_o make_v they_o not_o to_o reflect_v but_o only_o upon_o their_o own_o profit_n and_o advantage_n and_o which_o be_v more_o the_o priest_n say_v this_o itself_o in_o the_o same_o latin_a tongue_n which_o the_o great_a part_n do_v not_o understand_v in_o very_a truth_n what_o sound_a remembrance_n or_o what_o true_a sense_n of_o love_n and_o thankfulness_n can_v this_o kind_n of_o set_v forth_o the_o death_n of_o the_o lord_n all_o in_o a_o low_a mumble_a tone_n in_o general_a term_n &_o in_o a_o language_n ill_o understand_v excite_v we_o speak_v of_o a_o sound_a remembrance_n &_o of_o a_o love_n with_o understanding_n for_o as_o for_o a_o outward_a devotion_n or_o confuse_a resentment_n of_o holiness_n it_o be_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o way_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v full_a of_o pomp_n may_v excite_v as_o much_o as_o or_o more_o than_o we_o which_o be_v more_o simple_a among_o we_o to_o the_o end_n there_o may_v be_v no_o mistake_n in_o this_o matter_n behold_v in_o a_o few_o word_n what_o be_v our_o practice_n in_o the_o first_o place_n some_o day_n before_o the_o time_n appoint_v for_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v a_o exhortation_n make_v to_o we_o to_o prepare_v ourselves_o by_o act_n of_o repentance_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o charity_n and_o by_o a_o holy_a life_n the_o day_n be●ing_v come_v after_o the_o usual_a exercise_n of_o devotion_n which_o consist_v in_o prayer_n sing_v of_o psalm_n and_o read_v portion_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n most_o proper_a unto_o the_o subject_n there_o be_v ordinary_o a_o sermon_n make_v to_o we_o express_o upon_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n or_o upon_o the_o sacrament_n themselves_o the_o sermon_n be_v follow_v with_o a_o excellent_a prayer_n also_o upon_o the_o same_o subject_n
the_o prayer_n be_v end_v the_o minister_n do_v read_v unto_o we_o public_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o contain_v principal_o the_o manner_n wherein_o st._n paul_n relate_v that_o our_o saviour_n do_v institute_v it_o with_o another_o exhortation_n well_o to_o prepare_v our_o heart_n last_o the_o minister_n take_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n say_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o cup_n which_o we_o bless_v be_v the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v pour_v out_o for_o your_o sin_n or_o the_o cup_n which_o we_o bless_v be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o either_o one_o or_o the_o other_o of_o these_o expression_n be_v indifferent_o use_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n according_a to_o we_o not_o be_v tie_v unto_o the_o word_n after_o which_o in_o distribute_v the_o bread_n to_o the_o communicant_n the_o minister_n say_v again_o unto_o they_o to_o raise_v and_o awaken_v their_o zeal_n and_o their_o faith_n this_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o and_o in_o give_v the_o cup_n this_o be_v the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o your_o sin_n or_o some_o word_n to_o this_o sense_n and_o last_o of_o all_o when_o every_o one_o have_v do_v communicate_v we_o conclude_v with_o thanksgiving_n in_o sing_v the_o song_n of_o simeon_n and_o with_o the_o blessing_n wherewith_o the_o minister_n dismiss_v the_o assembly_n this_o particular_a account_n be_v only_o for_o they_o who_o be_v misinform_v of_o our_o practice_n we_o appeal_v here_o to_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o sincere_a person_n in_o the_o first_o place_n if_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o this_o manner_n of_o celebrate_v and_o of_o give_v and_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o most_o conform_a unto_o what_o we_o see_v in_o the_o institution_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o unto_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n of_o christianity_n and_o without_o comparison_n more_o conform_a than_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o second_o place_n which_o of_o these_o two_o manner_n of_o communicate_v be_v the_o most_o proper_a to_o excite_v and_o nourish_v true_a piety_n according_a to_o knowledge_n and_o a_o sincere_a remembrance_n of_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n there_o remain_v no_o more_o as_o to_o this_o point_n but_o to_o touch_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n last_o consideration_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o real_a communication_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n so_o that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n that_o we_o shall_v agree_v that_o the_o remembrance_n do_v not_o exclude_v all_o manner_n of_o presence_n but_o only_o that_o which_o do_v strike_v our_o sense_n we_o do_v not_o indeed_o say_v that_o remembrance_n exclude_v all_o manner_n of_o presence_n for_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v say_v of_o remembrance_n as_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n that_o it_o make_v thing_n to_o be_v present_a that_o be_v at_o the_o great_a distance_n there_o be_v a_o moral_a presence_n and_o a_o mystical_a presence_n a_o presence_n of_o object_n &_o of_o virtue_n as_o they_o speak_v which_o be_v not_o incompatible_a with_o remembrance_n for_o example_n the_o heaven_n the_o star_n though_o almost_o at_o a_o infinite_a distance_n be_v in_o some_o sort_n present_a with_o we_o not_o only_o because_o we_o see_v they_o but_o by_o the_o influence_n which_o they_o cast_v upon_o we_o we_o only_o say_v that_o remembrance_n exclude_v a_o presence_n real_a personal_a and_o as_o it_o be_v physical_a local_a and_o immediate_a under_o the_o colour_n and_o exterior_a appearance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o priest_n or_o in_o the_o mouth_n or_o stomach_n of_o the_o communicant_n but_o because_o both_o here_o and_o elsewhere_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n ground_n himself_o upon_o what_o he_o say_v that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o we_o deny_v this_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o teach_v a_o real_a participation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o that_o upon_o this_o occasion_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n here_o make_v a_o express_a article_n of_o the_o exposition_n of_o our_o belief_n upon_o the_o reality_n what_o we_o will_v say_v of_o our_o doctrine_n upon_o this_o point_n shall_v serve_v for_o a_o answer_n unto_o all_o the_o consequence_n which_o he_o draw_v both_o here_o or_o elsewhere_o to_o remove_v at_o once_o reality_n xii_o a_o examination_n of_o the_o exposition_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n make_v of_o our_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reality_n say_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n the_o equivocation_n which_o the_o calvinist_n use_v upon_o this_o matter_n and_o to_o make_v appear_v at_o the_o same_o time_n how_o near_o they_o be_v come_v unto_o we_o though_o i_o have_v undertake_v only_o to_o explain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v be_v expedient_a here_o to_o add_v the_o exposition_n of_o their_o judgement_n let_v we_o be_v permit_v before_o we_o enter_v upon_o this_o article_n to_o complain_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v at_o the_o very_a first_o here_o begin_v to_o treat_v we_o in_o term_n prohibit_v by_o the_o edict_n of_o our_o king_n at_o the_o same_o time_n also_o charge_v we_o with_o affect_a equivocation_n which_o in_o no_o wise_n agree_v with_o the_o simplicity_n of_o our_o doctrine_n we_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v the_o heat_n of_o dispute_n which_o have_v here_o insensible_o transport_v he_o beyond_o his_o natural_a equity_n and_o we_o will_v not_o at_o all_o concern_v ourselves_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o these_o sort_n of_o expression_n especial_o in_o a_o time_n wherein_o we_o be_v accustom_v unto_o more_o strict_a deal_n if_o the_o least_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n proceed_v from_o a_o person_n of_o his_o dignity_n and_o for_o who_o we_o have_v a_o great_a esteem_n be_v not_o more_o remarkable_a and_o of_o worse_a example_n than_o all_o the_o bitter_a thing_n that_o may_v be_v say_v by_o other_o person_n this_o article_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n treatise_n though_o more_o copious_a be_v for_o all_o that_o obscure_a and_o entangle_v full_a of_o repetition_n of_o digression_n and_o of_o comparison_n odious_a and_o beside_o his_o business_n which_o he_o make_v of_o we_o to_o socinian_o arrian_n nestorian_n pelagian_n insult_v over_o we_o upon_o word_n contrary_a to_o what_o appear_v manifest_o to_o be_v our_o sense_n but_o we_o will_v leave_v the_o word_n and_o apply_v ourselves_o to_o the_o thing_n in_o the_o first_o place_n instead_o of_o give_v a_o plain_a and_o entire_a exposition_n of_o our_o belief_n and_o afterward_o draw_v the_o consequence_n which_o he_o have_v a_o mind_n of_o he_o only_o give_v it_o by_o shred_n and_o so_o perplex_v that_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v he_o only_o report_v here_o and_o there_o some_o of_o our_o expression_n separate_v from_o each_o other_o endeavour_v therein_o to_o find_v some_o obscurity_n and_o afterward_o he_o ground_n upon_o this_o obscurity_n which_o himself_o have_v make_v the_o equivocation_n and_o contradiction_n which_o he_o impute_v unto_o we_o we_o need_v only_o take_v notice_n what_o course_n he_o take_v in_o the_o very_a entrance_n to_o make_v a_o judgement_n that_o he_o speak_v after_o his_o own_o manner_n and_o not_o after_o we_o their_o doctrine_n say_v he_o have_v two_o part_n the_o one_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o other_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o reality_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n division_n be_v wont_a to_o give_v order_n and_o to_o give_v light_n unto_o discourse_n but_o this_o on_o the_o contrary_a do_v at_o first_o sight_n so_o little_o set_v forth_o our_o doctrine_n that_o our_o people_n will_v not_o understand_v it_o the_o explication_n which_o follow_v be_v neither_o just_a nor_o more_o natural_a instead_o of_o lay_v down_o what_o we_o believe_v affirmative_o he_o lay_v down_o indeed_o but_o only_o the_o negative_a part_n of_o our_o belief_n wherefore_o we_o shall_v do_v better_a to_o explain_v our_o own_o doctrine_n ourselves_o in_o a_o few_o word_n with_o relation_n unto_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v hereof_o this_o shall_v be_v that_o plain_a form_n of_o doctrine_n which_o he_o say_v we_o have_v not_o and_o shall_v serve_v for_o a_o general_a refutation_n of_o all_o that_o he_o have_v produce_v we_o will_v not_o forbear_v answer_v afterward_o
body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n so_o all_o this_o consequence_n have_v no_o foundation_n in_o sum_n wherefore_o will_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v two_o different_a act_n of_o faith_n for_o unite_n we_o to_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o have_v part_n in_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n when_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o all_o be_v do_v or_o may_v be_v do_v by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o act_n of_o faith_n or_o wherefore_o may_v we_o not_o even_o assert_v two_o divers_a act_n of_o faith_n if_o they_o be_v conceive_v several_o by_o one_o of_o which_o we_o unite_v ourselves_o to_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o and_o by_o the_o other_o unto_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n without_o any_o need_n to_o imagine_v for_o all_o this_o two_o different_a communion_n one_o spiritual_a by_o faith_n and_o the_o other_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n or_o real_a as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n speak_v lord_n draw_v we_o after_o thou_o lift_v up_o our_o heart_n unto_o thou_o come_v dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o thy_o spirit_n behold_v here_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o unite_v we_o to_o jesus_n christ_n if_o the_o faith_n be_v such_o as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o this_o union_n of_o its_o self_n suffice_v to_o effect_v that_o we_o shall_v also_o have_v part_n in_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n by_o this_o one_o act_n of_o faith_n lord_n impute_v to_o we_o thy_o righteousness_n and_o grant_v that_o be_v unite_v unto_o thou_o by_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n we_o may_v have_v a_o share_n in_o all_o thy_o benefit_n and_o in_o particular_a in_o the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o death_n behold_v here_o nevertheless_o a_o second_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o regard_v direct_o the_o part_n that_o we_o have_v in_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n the_o difference_n of_o these_o two_o act_n of_o faith_n proper_o will_v be_v only_o in_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o object_n which_o faith_n do_v propose_v unto_o itself_o in_o the_o one_o it_o propose_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o the_o other_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o in_o one_o and_o the_o other_o there_o be_v a_o real_a communion_n with_o our_o saviour_n but_o spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n but_o no_o man_n add_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n 112._o 〈◊〉_d 112._o can_v conceive_v what_o difference_n there_o be_v betwixt_o participate_v by_o faith_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o to_o participate_v by_o faith_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n this_o be_v now_o the_o second_o or_o three_o time_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n will_v conceive_v all_o let_v we_o see_v if_o he_o will_v be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o follow_v immediate_o after_o this_o but_o after_o all_o how_o can_v he_o say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v conceive_v any_o difference_n betwixt_o participate_v by_o faith_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o participate_v by_o faith_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n for_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n be_v evident_o two_o different_a thing_n and_o there_o be_v no_o one_o who_o can_v easy_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n betwixt_o partake_v of_o the_o one_o and_o partake_v of_o the_o other_o whether_o it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o one_o act_n of_o faith_n or_o by_o two_o though_o beside_o the_o manner_n of_o partake_v of_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v always_o the_o same_o to_o wit_n spiritual_o and_o by_o faith_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v here_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n cry_v out_o again_o in_o finish_v this_o article_n who_o can_v but_o admire_v the_o force_n of_o truth_n etc._n etc._n and_o afterward_o how_o ingenuous_o do_v the_o calvinist_n confess_v unto_o we_o the_o truth_n they_o will_v have_v be_v strong_o dispose_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o figure_n only_o and_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o spirit_n only_o in_o effect_n lay_v aside_o these_o great_a word_n of_o participation_n of_o proper_a substance_n and_o many_o other_o which_o express_v a_o real_a presence_n and_o which_o only_a cause_n perplexity_n etc._n etc._n let_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n also_o in_o his_o turn_n ingenuous_o confess_v the_o truth_n he_o have_v be_v very_o strong_o dispose_v and_o many_o other_o intelligent_a person_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o may_v be_v will_v be_v so_o with_o he_o to_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v only_o in_o the_o eucharist_n a_o true_a and_o real_a communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o that_o which_o we_o there_o have_v spiritual_a be_v very_o real_a lay_v aside_o that_o great_a word_n of_o transubstantiation_n as_o he_o have_v lay_v it_o aside_o in_o the_o first_o edition_n of_o his_o treatise_n that_o of_o concomitance_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o the_o cup_n be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o communion_n and_o many_o other_o which_o imply_v manifest_a contradiction_n and_o which_o cause_n much_o more_o perplexity_n that_o which_o be_v true_o admirable_a in_o this_o place_n be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v as_o we_o do_v a_o spiritual_a communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n himself_o say_v the_o very_a same_o but_o now_o in_o express_a term_n that_o in_o the_o lord_n supper_n there_o be_v a_o communion_n 112._o pa._n 112._o by_o the_o which_o we_o partake_v spiritual_o of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o of_o his_o spirit_n altogether_o in_o receive_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o death_n which_o be_v proper_o the_o result_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o these_o word_n of_o participation_n and_o of_o substance_n with_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n please_v himself_o and_o which_o he_o use_v for_o all_o that_o himself_o signify_v nothing_o more_o the_o only_a difference_n that_o there_o be_v betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o be_v that_o we_o stop_v here_o and_o that_o he_o beside_o this_o spiritual_a communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n suppose_v another_o real_a communion_n as_o he_o speak_v that_o be_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n which_o we_o can_v allow_v of_o here_o in_o another_o prospect_n he_o insult_v over_o we_o as_o if_o there_o can_v not_o be_v any_o other_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o that_o only_a which_o be_v have_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o that_o without_o admit_v of_o that_o there_o can_v nothing_o be_v acknowledge_v in_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o a_o participation_n of_o the_o spirit_n exclude_v thus_o this_o other_o spiritual_a communion_n of_o the_o very_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o he_o but_o now_o confess_v let_v it_o be_v judge_v by_o this_o and_o by_o all_o the_o rest_n which_o have_v be_v say_v as_o well_o of_o our_o opinion_n as_o of_o his_o way_n of_o argue_v who_o it_o be_v that_o create_v perplexity_n or_o that_o contradict_v themselves_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n or_o we_o that_o use_v equivocation_n about_o word_n and_o last_o if_o he_o have_v so_o much_o subject_n of_o triumph_n upon_o this_o article_n as_o he_o seem_v to_o imagine_v to_o himself_o sign_n xiii_o of_o tran._n substantiation_n of_o adoration_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n will_v slide_v along_o more_o sweet_o upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o upon_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n than_o he_o do_v in_o oppose_v our_o doctrine_n there_o he_o attack_v and_o attack_v adversary_n as_o he_o call_v they_o to_o who_o they_o hardly_o give_v the_o liberty_n to_o defend_v themselves_o we_o may_v say_v any_o thing_n against_o they_o they_o will_v answer_v but_o by_o half_n here_o he_o must_v defend_v himself_o and_o he_o have_v against_o he_o scripture_n reason_n evidence_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o the_o common_a notion_n of_o christianity_n imprint_v in_o conscience_n which_o be_v other_o kind_n of_o adversary_n more_o terrible_a speak_v malgre_a opposition_n each_o in_o his_o order_n and_o speak_v so_o loud_o as_o they_o put_v the_o able_a to_o silence_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o our_o belief_n though_o all_o thing_n be_v very_o simple_a in_o it_o be_v not_o satisfy_v if_o he_o can_v conceive_v even_o the_o very_a manner_n whereby_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v real_o unite_v we_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n notwithstanding_o the_o great_a distance_n which_o there_o be_v betwixt_o we_o and_o he_o which_o nevertheless_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v perpetual_o teach_v
do_v it_o appear_v that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o same_o apostle_n do_v adore_v the_o sacrament_n 2.46_o act_n 2.46_o it_o be_v only_o very_o plain_o say_v that_o they_o go_v break_v bread_n from_o house_n to_o house_n the_o author_n of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n who_o have_v careful_o collect_v all_o the_o passage_n of_o ecclesiastical_a doctor_n of_o the_o twelve_o first_o century_n which_o they_o think_v may_v favour_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n have_v cause_v to_o be_v print_v in_o great_a letter_n all_o the_o passage_n where_o there_o be_v any_o word_n that_o seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o at_o any_o time_n or_o in_o any_o place_n the_o sacrament_n be_v adore_v but_o they_o have_v neither_o find_v the_o word_n adore_v nor_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n and_o no_o more_o but_o the_o word_n only_o in_o three_o or_o four_o place_n in_o all_o the_o follow_a age_n until_o towards_o the_o ten_o age._n and_o which_o be_v more_o in_o those_o very_a place_n the_o adoration_n do_v not_o relate_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n but_o unto_o jesus_n christ_n believe_v ●o_o be_v in_o heaven_n whence_o they_o can_v conclude_v a_o sovereign_a adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n with_o great_a reason_n than_o they_o grant_v we_o have_v when_o we_o allege_v ●o_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n a_o infinite_a number_n of_o place_n where_o their_o author_n teach_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n if_o they_o will_v have_v it_o that_o in_o these_o place_n where_o their_o author_n speak_v of_o image_n this_o term_n of_o adoration_n do_v not_o signify_v a_o sovereign_a and_o absolute_a adoration_n such_o as_o be_v give_v unto_o god_n but_o only_o a_o veneration_n or_o relative_a honour_n as_o they_o speak_v why_o will_v they_o not_o allow_v that_o in_o those_o few_o place_n where_o those_o other_o author_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o adoration_n whereof_o they_o speak_v may_v not_o also_o be_v a_o honour_n or_o ●eneration_n which_o be_v render_v unto_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n it_o be_v true_a as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o acknowledge_v any_o other_o substance_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o do_v not_o wonder_v that_o those_o who_o be_v so_o persuade_v pay_v it_o their_o adoration_n but_o from_o thence_o itself_o that_o they_o believe_v that_o adoration_n be_v a_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o find_v this_o consequence_n neither_o in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o time_n which_o be_v not_o in_o question_n there_o be_v much_o reason_n to_o admire_v that_o this_o same_o relation_n which_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v find_v betwixt_o these_o two_o doctrine_n do_v not_o at_o least_o give_v they_o some_o suspicion_n of_o they_o both_o or_o rather_o that_o it_o do_v not_o at_o last_o incline_v they_o to_o reject_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o mass_n fourteen_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n also_o regard_v only_o as_o a_o consequence_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o of_o transubstantiation_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o like_o it_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n in_o those_o first_o time_n they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o celebrate_v the_o lord_n supper_n in_o the_o very_a same_o simplicity_n wherein_o it_o be_v institute_v but_o they_o say_v neither_o low_a mass_n nor_o high_a mass_n nor_o mass_n without_o communicant_n nor_o mass_n unto_o such_o or_o ●uch_v a_o intention_n nor_o for_o all_o these_o particular_a end_n for_o which_o mass_n be_v ●aid_v at_o present_a nor_o last_o the_o mass_n ●n_v a_o language_n not_o understand_v by_o the_o people_n at_o this_o time_n all_o this_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o in_o this_o church_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v as_o the_o principal_a and_o most_o important_a part_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o eucharistical_a sacrifice_n 4.6_o heb._n 13.15_o psal_n 50.14_o psal_n 4.6_o in_o that_o the_o former_a be_v to_o appease_v the_o deity_n and_o to_o make_v expi●ation_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o offering_n and_o the_o other_o to_o render_v thanks_o to_o god_n for_o blessing_n receive_v or_o to_o ●rave_v other_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o lord_n supper_n or_o the_o eucharist_n may_v be_v call_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o a_o large_a and_o general_a sense_n as_o the_o scripture_n say_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o prayer_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o that_o alm_n deed_n 〈◊〉_d a_o sacrifice_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o always_o force_v thing_n unto_o extreme_n will_v have_v the_o mass_n to_o be_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n we_o think_v say_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n that_o this_o oblation_n make_v god_n become_v favourable_a 130._o pa._n 130._o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o we_o call_v it_o propitiatory_a thus_o it_o be_v that_o there_o need_v but_o a_o thought_n and_o a_o word_n to_o make_v a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n and_o in_o this_o sort_n prayer_n itself_o wherein_o we_o offer_v ourselves_o unto_o god_n and_o believe_v that_o we_o render_v god_n favourable_a unto_o we_o be_v a_o true_a propitiatory_a sacrifice_n we_o will_v not_o here_o press_v what_o the_o apostle_n say_v 9.22_o heb._n 9.22_o that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a propitiation_n or_o remission_n of_o sin_n without_o effusion_n of_o blood_n we_o will_v only_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o divine_a right_o touch_v the_o sacrifice_n that_o not_o only_o the_o sacrifice_n but_o the_o altar_n itself_o be_v of_o great_a dignity_n and_o of_o great_a holiness_n than_o the_o oblation_n and_o that_o the_o oblation_n itself_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o altar_n here_o they_o will_v have_v a_o sacrifice_n where_o it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o man_n who_o be_v the_o sacrificer_n 19_o exod._n 29.37_o mat._n 23.18_o 19_o be_v but_o a_o worm_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o altar_n a_o stone_n or_o table_n make_v by_o man_n hand_n and_o the_o offer_v the_o proper_a son_n of_o god_n god_n himself_o if_o they_o who_o have_v read_v this_o part_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n treatise_n will_v attentive_o cast_v their_o eye_n at_o the_o same_o time_n upon_o those_o passage_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o speak_v of_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v institute_v and_o celebrate_v we_o be_v persuade_v that_o if_o they_o never_o so_o little_o keep_v their_o mind_n free_a and_o in_o a_o condition_n to_o judge_v without_o prejudice_n they_o will_v find_v so_o little_a agreement_n of_o the_o one_o with_o the_o other_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v they_o be_v two_o gospel_n but_o this_o will_v appear_v yet_o more_o particular_o hebrew_n xv._o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n if_o we_o right_o take_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o epistle_n which_o he_o write_v unto_o the_o hebrew_n the_o force_n whereof_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n endeavour_n here_o also_o to_o elude_v to_o which_o purpose_n we_o need_v only_o to_o follow_v the_o rule_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v himself_o propose_v to_o know_v whether_o 2_o doctrine_n be_v opposite_a which_o be_v to_o see_v if_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v sufficient_o agree_v with_o those_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n for_o expedition_n sake_n we_o will_v here_o mention_v only_o two_o of_o the_o apostle_n both_o which_o speak_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n to_o see_v if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n be_v conform_v thereto_o st._n paul_n compare_v the_o ceremony_n and_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o old_a covenant_n with_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v find_v in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o design_v to_o show_v how_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v abolish_v by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o say_v among_o other_o thing_n ●●_o heb._n 9_o ●●_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o enter_v into_o place_n make_v with_o hand_n but_o that_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n where_o he_o appear_v for_o we_o before_o the_o face_n of_o god_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n teach_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v every_o hour_n upon_o the_o altar_n make_v with_o hand_n and_o that_o it_o be_v there_o that_o he_o appear_v for_o we_o before_o the_o
apostle_n themselves_o or_o at_o least_o of_o the_o follow_a age_n which_o speak_v clear_o and_o in_o express_a word_n we_o have_v receive_v such_o or_o such_o a_o doctrine_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o we_o hold_v it_o from_o those_o who_o have_v receive_v it_o themselves_o from_o the_o apostle_n own_o mouth_n for_o who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v at_o least_o some_o formal_a and_o express_a testimony_n to_o establish_v by_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o tradition_n a_o religious_a worship_n or_o any_o important_a doctrine_n that_o shall_v bind_v man_n conscience_n but_o in_o conclusion_n behold_v here_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n give_v we_o in_o stead_n of_o such_o a_o proof_n 160._o pa._n 159_o 160._o the_o certain_a sign_n say_v he_o that_o a_o tradition_n come_v from_o the_o apostle_n be_v when_o it_o be_v embrace_v by_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n without_o possible_a find_v out_o the_o begin_n of_o it_o etc._n etc._n and_o a_o little_a after_o it_o not_o be_v possible_a add_v he_o that_o a_o doctrine_n receive_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n can_v proceed_v from_o any_o other_o origin_n but_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n indefinite_o lay_v down_o this_o maxim_n not_o dare_v to_o apply_v the_o same_o unto_o any_o of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o know_v that_o this_o character_n indefinite_a as_o it_o be_v do_v not_o suit_n with_o they_o to_o judge_v right_o of_o his_o argument_n and_o of_o the_o consequence_n which_o he_o will_v draw_v from_o thence_o this_o be_v the_o order_n into_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o put_v his_o proposition_n it_o be_v impossible_a say_v he_o that_o a_o doctrine_n receive_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v proceed_v from_o any_o other_o origin_n but_o from_o the_o apostle_n a_o doctrine_n embrace_v by_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n whereof_o the_o beginning_n can_v be_v show_v be_v necessary_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o such_o a_o doctrine_n proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n now_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v doctrine_n embrace_v by_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n without_o possibility_n of_o show_v their_o beginning_n therefore_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n these_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n proposition_n in_o the_o order_n wherein_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o in_o this_o order_n it_o be_v plain_o evident_a that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o they_o that_o be_v absolute_o true_a or_o rather_o that_o be_v not_o false_a in_o the_o term_n in_o which_o it_o be_v conceive_v in_o the_o first_o place_n this_o proposition_n be_v not_o true_a that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o a_o doctrine_n receive_v from_o the_o beginning_n o●_n the_o church_n shall_v come_v from_o any_o other_o origin_n but_o from_o the_o apostle_n except_o it_o be_v show_v that_o it_o be_v then_o receive_v general_o of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o it_o for_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o testify_v that_o in_o their_o time_n the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n begin_v to_o work_v 1.7_o 2_o thes_n 2.7_o 1_o tim._n 1.7_o that_o there_o be_v false_a teacher_n among_o the_o christian_n and_o by_o consequence_n false_a doctrine_n so_o that_o it_o be_v no_o way_n impossible_a that_o these_o same_o doctrine_n be_v not_o follow_v or_o revive_v in_o aftertime_n ●s_n be_v many_o heresy_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o first_o and_o second_o age_n of_o christianity_n but_o the_o second_o proposition_n be_v yet_o less_o true_a that_o a_o doctrine_n embrace_v by_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n whereof_o the_o beginning_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v shall_v necessary_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o it_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n sense_n for_o those_o that_o make_v any_o reflection_n upon_o the_o manner_n by_o which_o change_v come_v in_o either_o in_o the_o law_n or_o custom_n of_o state_n or_o in_o the_o worship_n and_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n very_o well_o know_v that_o the_o time_n and_o original_n of_o these_o change_n can_v always_o be_v show_v much_o less_o therefore_o shall_v it_o be_v say_v that_o these_o establishment_n must_v necessary_o be_v from_o the_o first_o foundation_n of_o these_o state_n or_o religion_n who_o can_v show_v the_o original_a of_o all_o the_o false_a tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v it_o therefore_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v all_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n or_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o moses_n among_o christian_n themselves_o for_o example_n the_o use_n of_o give_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o little_a child_n be_v without_o doubt_n general_o observe_v 4_o de_fw-fr pec_fw-fr in_o rit_n &_o remi_fw-la two_o 1._o ca._n 20_o &_o 24._o et_fw-fr l._n 3._o contr_n julian_n c_o 4_o s●ss_n cap_n 4_o because_o st._n austin_n open_o have_v teach_v it_o as_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a and_o that_o without_o it_o little_a child_n can_v not_o be_v save_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n say_v upon_o this_o subject_n that_o the_o father_n which_o follow_v this_o custom_n aught_o to_o show_v their_o reason_n for_o it_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v one_o of_o those_o doctrine_n whereof_o we_o can_v show_v the_o beginning_n and_o for_o all_o that_o none_o dare_v to_o say_v at_o this_o time_n that_o it_o be_v receive_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o it_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n otherwise_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n will_v not_o have_v dare_v to_o abrogate_v and_o abolish_v it_o as_o it_o have_v do_v in_o fine_a the_o three_o proposition_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v suppose_v in_o his_o argument_n be_v yet_o less_o true_a than_o the_o two_o former_a namely_o that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o separate_v we_o from_o her_o communion_n be_v doctrine_n embrace_v by_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n without_o possible_a show_v the_o beginning_n thereof_o can_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n show_v any_o thing_n near_o this_o of_o any_o one_o of_o those_o tradition_n which_o be_v in_o dispute_n betwixt_o we_o for_o example_n of_o purgatory_n of_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n of_o worship_v of_o image_n of_o relic_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o auricular_a confession_n of_o indulgence_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o private_a mass_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n of_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n of_o religious_a worship_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n or_o in_o fine_a of_o any_o of_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n which_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o present_a time_n in_o which_o it_o be_v evident_o know_v that_o there_o be_v many_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o well_o in_o the_o east_n as_o the_o west_n which_o do_v not_o embrace_v all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v also_o a_o thing_n most_o certain_a and_o notorious_a that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o show_v i_o will_v not_o say_v of_o all_o these_o doctrine_n in_o general_n but_o of_o any_o one_o of_o they_o alone_o that_o it_o be_v embrace_v not_o only_o in_o all_o time_n but_o scarce_o at_o any_o time_n by_o all_o the_o christian_a church_n on_o the_o contrary_a there_o be_v a_o great_a number_n of_o these_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whereof_o their_o first_o beginning_n may_v precise_o enough_o be_v show_v for_o example_n the_o worship_v of_o saint_n and_o image_n auricular_a confession_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o many_o other_o and_o of_o all_o in_o general_n except_v that_o of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a whereof_o there_o be_v some_o mention_n to_o be_v find_v towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o second_o age._n our_o author_n have_v very_o solid_o make_v appear_v that_o there_o be_v no_o footstep_n of_o they_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o three_o first_o errans_fw-la cajetan_n thom._n p●r●z_n peron_n beat._n rhen._n gab._n biel_n roffen-lombard_n etc._n etc._n gab._n biel_n lect_n 57_o upon_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n quia_fw-la sine_fw-la du_fw-fr bio_fw-it ecclesia_fw-la habet_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sponsi_fw-la svi_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la non_fw-la errans_fw-la the_o most_o know_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n themselves_o do_v not_o dissent_v as_o to_o the_o great_a number_n of_o tradition_n as_o have_v be_v note_v before_o of_o worship_v of_o saint_n of_o image_n of_o confession_n of_o purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n and_o they_o maintain_v not_o these_o sort_n of_o doctrine_n but_o by_o the_o general_a maxim_n of_o the_o
dispute_n it_o will_v easy_o appear_v whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v have_v keep_v herself_o within_o the_o bound_n which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o she_o have_v prescribe_v herself_o if_o she_o have_v always_o exact_o follow_v the_o step_n of_o those_o which_o go_v before_o she_o and_o if_o in_o fine_a what_o be_v here_o say_v of_o her_o temper_n and_o moderation_n be_v not_o only_o rather_o the_o ordinary_a stile_n of_o those_o who_o make_v profession_n of_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o law_n even_o when_o they_o open_o trample_v they_o under_o foot_n the_o three_o proposition_n particular_o regard_v the_o authority_n and_o infallibility_n of_o synod_n or_o council_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o pastor_n assemble_v to_o decide_v controversy_n and_o the_o faithful_a to_o receive_v their_o decision_n without_o examine_v they_o we_o all_o agree_v to_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o proposition_n and_o we_o believe_v also_o that_o the_o way_n of_o synodal_n assembly_n be_v the_o most_o universal_a outward_a mean_n and_o the_o most_o effectual_a that_o god_n make_v use_v of_o to_o keep_v man_n mind_n unite_v in_o one_o only_a belief_n but_o as_o we_o can_v agree_v to_o the_o infallibility_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n attribute_n unto_o they_o so_o neither_o can_v we_o accord_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v oblige_v blind_o to_o receive_v their_o decision_n without_o examine_v they_o 17.11_o john_n 5.39_o mat._n 7.15_o act_n 20.29_o 1_o thes_n 5.21_o act._n 17.11_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v not_o demand_v so_o blind_a a_o submission_n to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n on_o the_o contrary_a they_o advise_v that_o man_n will_v compare_v it_o with_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o will_v distinguish_v the_o wolf_n from_o the_o shepherd_n that_o they_o will_v examine_v all_o and_o retain_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o those_o of_o berea_n be_v commend_v for_o that_o after_o have_v hear_v the_o apostle_n they_o compare_v their_o sermon_n with_o the_o scripture_n if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o this_o may_v take_v place_n as_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o each_o apostle_n in_o particular_a and_o not_o as_o to_o what_o have_v be_v decide_v by_o all_o the_o apostle_n as_o that_o which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n allege_v out_o of_o the_o 15_o of_o the_o act_n when_o the_o apostle_n be_v assemble_v upon_o the_o controversy_n which_o be_v raise_v touch_v the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n they_o pronounce_v these_o remarkable_a work_n it_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o afterward_o st._n paul_n and_o silas_n go_v through_o the_o city_n teach_v believer_n to_o keep_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n will_v do_v well_o to_o put_v some_o difference_n betwixt_o those_o holy_a man_n which_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n immediate_o in_o form_n of_o fiery_a tongue_n and_o the_o father_n of_o the_o latter_a council_n of_o constance_n and_o of_o trent_n of_o who_o the_o very_a romish_a catholic_n author_n observe_v the_o passion_n the_o motive_n and_o the_o humane_a interest_n that_o inspirited_a they_o 2._o we_o see_v that_o though_o the_o apostle_n be_v full_o persuade_v of_o their_o authority_n as_o st._n paul_n speak_v particular_o of_o himself_o yet_o they_o be_v very_o far_o from_o thunder_v out_o anathema_n for_o the_o least_o matter_n as_o the_o council_n have_v do_v at_o every_o word_n against_o all_o those_o that_o will_v not_o admit_v even_o of_o mere_a school-distinction_n and_o figure_n of_o rhetoric_n we_o see_v the_o apostle_n find_v their_o judgement_n upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o have_v conclude_v upon_o it_o they_o only_o say_v with_o the_o great_a sweetness_n in_o the_o world_n if_o you_o do_v these_o thing_n you_o will_v do_v well_o 3._o nor_o be_v they_o at_o all_o concern_v even_o in_o this_o dispute_n about_o essential_a point_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o about_o ceremony_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v already_o silent_o abrogate_a by_o the_o gospel_n &_o which_o the_o apostle_n will_v maintain_v but_o for_o a_o time_n to_o give_v the_o synagogue_n a_o honourable_a burial_n and_o to_o maintain_v union_n betwixt_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o other_o people_n which_o have_v new_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o sum_n very_o soon_o after_o st._n paul_n himself_o preach_v that_o people_n may_v eat_v indifferent_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o meat_n and_o it_o be_v know_v that_o in_o process_n of_o time_n the_o usage_n establish_v by_o this_o ordinance_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v insensible_o abolish_v 4._o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v publish_v their_o decision_n with_o a_o absolute_a injunction_n to_o obey_v it_o but_o they_o send_v paul_n barnabas_n and_o silas_n to_o instruct_v the_o faithful_a to_o keep_v this_o ordinance_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o all_o likelihood_n to_o show_v they_o the_o motive_n and_o ground_n thereof_o which_o do_v not_o import_n that_o it_o be_v forbid_v they_o to_o examine_v it_o last_o we_o may_v retort_v against_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n afterward_o object_n against_o we_o which_o be_v that_o their_o practice_n agree_v not_o at_o all_o with_o their_o maxim_n for_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o they_o believe_v the_o council_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n nor_o that_o they_o always_o receive_v all_o their_o decision_n either_o with_o examine_v they_o or_o without_o examine_v they_o for_o example_n they_o have_v not_o hold_v to_o those_o of_o the_o council_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v which_o forbid_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o the_o decision_n of_o those_o council_n have_v not_o hinder_v but_o that_o other_o council_n have_v ordain_v the_o contrary_a it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o gallican_n church_n have_v not_o yet_o to_o this_o day_n receive_v all_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o to_o point_n that_o regard_v ecclesiastical_a order_n and_o discipline_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v much_o more_o of_o humane_a jurisdiction_n than_o the_o very_a matter_n of_o faith_n the_o four_o and_o last_o proposition_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v that_o wherein_o he_o object_n against_o we_o that_o this_o authority_n be_v so_o necessary_a that_o after_o have_v decry_v it_o we_o have_v be_v oblige_v to_o establish_v it_o in_o the_o very_a matter_n of_o faith_n itself_o this_o proposition_n contain_v two_o accusation_n which_o destroy_v each_o the_o other_o that_o which_o make_v they_o the_o less_o credible_a the_o one_o be_v that_o we_o have_v decry_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o other_o that_o we_o have_v establish_v it_o without_o any_o bound_n in_o sum_n nothing_o be_v worse_o ground_v than_o the_o first_o of_o these_o accusation_n for_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o we_o ever_o deny_v that_o order_n shall_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o church_n nor_o that_o we_o have_v ever_o write_v or_o speak_v against_o the_o just_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o god_n call_v to_o be_v pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o faithful_a our_o confession_n of_o faith_n our_o discipline_n the_o act_n of_o our_o synod_n in_o a_o word_n all_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n himself_o report_v which_o be_v what_o be_v most_o ancient_a and_o most_o authentic_a among_o ●s_n since_o the_o reformation_n manifest_o destroy_v this_o accusation_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v not_o allege_v any_o thing_n which_o show_v the_o contrary_a our_o doctor_n have_v preach_v and_o write_v against_o the_o excessive_a authority_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n against_o the_o sovereignty_n which_o we_o believe_v the_o pope_n have_v general_o usurp_v over_o bishop_n which_o yet_o have_v the_o same_o character_n and_o the_o same_o dignity_n as_o ●hey_n have_v over_o all_o the_o clergy_n over_o the_o people_n over_o the_o council_n and_o ●ver_o prince_n themselves_o under_o pre●ence_n of_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n we_o ●ould_v have_v speak_v against_o the_o absolute_a power_n that_o pope_n attribute_n to_o themselves_o of_o assemble_v or_o not_o assemble_v council_n because_o that_o ecclesiastical_a history_n give_v we_o assurance_n that_o in_o the_o first_o and_o best_a age_n of_o christianity_n it_o be_v the_o emperor_n that_o assemble_v they_o in_o fine_a we_o can_v have_v again_o exclaim_v against_o the_o abuse_n of_o indulgence_n and_o in_o a_o word_n against_o all_o those_o point_n whereby_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v become_v so_o wide_o different_a from_o that_o wherein_o it_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o st._n peter_n himself_o of_o who_o the_o pope_n style_n themselves_o successor_n but_o in_o all_o these_o very_a thing_n those_o
somewhere_o what_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o great_a name_n indeed_o and_o for_o which_o we_o have_v a_o true_a and_o sincere_a respect_n but_o be_v not_o this_o to_o abuse_v name_n and_o to_o neglect_v the_o thing_n as_o those_o who_o cry_v always_o the_o temple_n the_o temple_n if_o they_o will_v have_v we_o to_o render_v submission_n let_v they_o tell_v we_o at_o least_o to_o who_o we_o shall_v render_v it_o the_o question_n be_v to_o know_v in_o who_o this_o infallibility_n and_o this_o absolute_a and_o supreme_a authority_n reside_v of_o who_o we_o shall_v receive_v these_o final_a judgement_n without_o examine_v they_o be_v it_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o council_n that_o be_v infallible_a and_o unto_o who_o we_o must_v thus_o blind_o submit_v the_o pope_n either_o above_o the_o council_n to_o approve_v of_o it_o and_o to_o give_v it_o all_o its_o authority_n or_o only_o in_o the_o most_o eminent_a place_n of_o the_o council_n for_o order_n among_o the_o council_n themselves_o be_v it_o all_o the_o council_n together_o that_o be_v infallible_a and_o who_o decision_n we_o must_v follow_v or_o only_o those_o council_n which_o have_v determine_v according_a to_o the_o allowance_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n those_o of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o francfort_n which_o prohibit_v the_o worship_v of_o image_n or_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o in_o express_a term_n enjoin_v the_o adoration_n of_o they_o or_o in_o fine_a that_o of_o trent_n which_o only_o say_v to_o serve_v and_o worship_n and_o give_v unto_o they_o the_o honour_n that_o be_v due_a and_o as_o to_o this_o council_n of_o trent_n itself_o ought_v we_o to_o take_v all_o together_o as_o they_o do_v in_o spain_n in_o italy_n and_o germany_n or_o reject_v all_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o just_a liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n as_o be_v do_v in_o france_n and_o in_o fine_a how_o can_v we_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n preside_v in_o some_o of_o their_o session_n and_o not_o in_o all_o that_o they_o have_v err_v in_o one_o point_n and_o that_o they_o be_v infallible_a in_o another_o these_o be_v not_o question_n make_v at_o pleasure_n or_o school_n question_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n will_v insinuate_v to_o palliate_v the_o profound_a silence_n that_o he_o keep_v upon_o all_o these_o thing_n neither_o be_v they_o like_o many_o other_o question_n real_o useless_a whereof_o nevertheless_o the_o council_n have_v make_v so_o many_o article_n of_o faith_n these_o be_v important_a matter_n which_o ought_v not_o only_o to_o be_v know_v for_o curiosity_n sake_n but_o which_o be_v to_o be_v practise_v and_o by_o consequence_n well_o understand_v to_o regulate_v our_o conscience_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n propose_v to_o himself_o to_o make_v a_o complete_a exposition_n of_o his_o belief_n one_o will_v think_v it_o have_v be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o his_o design_n to_o let_v we_o have_v understand_v it_o a_o little_a plain_o and_o more_o open_o than_o to_o have_v conceal_v all_o the_o difficulty_n throughout_o and_o only_o endeavour_v to_o create_v doubt_n upon_o some_o point_n of_o we_o for_o the_o positive_a clear_a and_o sincere_a proposal_n of_o a_o doctrine_n do_v persuade_v it_o much_o better_a than_o do_v dispute_n let_v we_o return_v notwithstanding_o to_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n impute_v to_o we_o they_o say_v he_o speak_v of_o we_o upbraid_v to_o we_o our_o submission_n to_o the_o church_n yes_o a_o blind_a submission_n without_o examine_v any_o thing_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n propose_v or_o rather_o a_o slavery_n direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o christianity_n a_o submission_n in_o fine_a of_o body_n rather_o than_o of_o mind_n which_o tend_v to_o the_o plunge_a man_n into_o that_o gross_a ignorance_n from_o whence_o christianity_n have_v deliver_v they_o for_o as_o to_o a_o free_a and_o voluntary_a submission_n and_o with_o knowledge_n such_o as_o the_o scripture_n require_v be_v very_o far_o from_o blame_v it_o we_o teach_v it_o we_o preach_v it_o and_o god_n be_v praise_v we_o practise_v it_o but_o you_o yourselves_o also_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v this_o weakness_n and_o blind_a submission_n which_o you_o upbraid_v to_o we_o when_o person_n be_v charge_v with_o opinion_n which_o do_v open_o contradict_v one_o another_o if_o the_o proof_n be_v not_o clear_a it_o destroy_v itself_o now_o what_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n proof_n you_o have_v say_v he_o put_v your_o faith_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o four_o minister_n so_o far_o leave_v it_o to_o they_o that_o you_o have_v give_v they_o full_a power_n to_o alter_v your_o confession_n of_o faith_n these_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n word_n and_o not_o we_o this_o be_v a_o commentary_n upon_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o synod_n or_o a_o consequence_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n draw_v thence_o aggravate_v the_o term_n and_o not_o at_o all_o the_o sense_n nor_o expression_n of_o the_o decree_n itself_o the_o decree_n give_v power_n to_o agree_v and_o conclude_v upon_o all_o point_n which_o shall_v come_v under_o consideration_n and_o not_o to_o change_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n these_o be_v different_a term_n and_o though_o it_o may_v be_v presume_v that_o such_o reconciliation_n be_v never_o make_v without_o use_v some_o temper_n which_o may_v content_v man_n mind_n on_o the_o one_o part_n and_o the_o other_o and_o that_o this_o overture_n of_o reconciliation_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o project_n of_o some_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v to_o be_v common_a yet_o to_o restrain_v some_o opinion_n which_o be_v not_o essential_o necessary_a or_o even_o to_o change_v or_o sweeten_v some_o expression_n will_v not_o be_v to_o change_v a_o confession_n of_o faith_n in_o all_o likelihood_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n will_v not_o disapprove_v of_o this_o design_n for_o therein_o lie_v all_o the_o subtlety_n of_o his_o exposition_n to_o sweeten_v what_o he_o can_v and_o to_o let_v alone_o what_o he_o can_v sweeten_v the_o difficulty_n be_v only_o in_o keep_v a_o man_n self_n within_o just_a bound_n not_o too_o much_o to_o weaken_v the_o sense_n in_o sweeten_v and_o not_o to_o loose_v too_o much_o by_o silence_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o man_n abandon_v not_o worship_n or_o doctrine_n which_o do_v visible_o tend_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n nor_o change_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o doctrine_n by_o reduce_v it_o unto_o sweet_a term_n it_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n himself_o and_o to_o those_o who_o shall_v read_v his_o treatise_n to_o judge_v whether_o he_o have_v keep_v himself_o within_o these_o just_a bound_n as_o it_o will_v have_v belong_v unto_o our_o church_n to_o have_v judge_v whether_o their_o deputy_n have_v keep_v themselves_o if_o it_o have_v happen_v that_o they_o have_v enter_v into_o conference_n with_o the_o lutheran_n to_o conclude_v as_o it_o be_v principal_o upon_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o we_o have_v differ_v from_o the_o lutheran_n so_o upon_o that_o itself_o we_o agree_v both_o they_o and_o we_o upon_o the_o foundation_n and_o admit_v not_o of_o any_o article_n that_o destroy_v it_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n which_o be_v common_a to_o we_o with_o they_o it_o will_v seem_v that_o if_o the_o lutheran_n can_v not_o entire_o have_v accord_v to_o our_o doctrine_n they_o will_v have_v reduce_v they_o unto_o what_o the_o able_a among_o they_o do_v which_o be_v not_o to_o determine_v the_o manner_n how_o jesus_n christ_n be_v real_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o believe_v say_v they_o his_o presence_n and_o we_o feel_v therein_o his_o efficacy_n but_o we_o be_v ignorant_a here_o of_o the_o manner_n and_o in_o this_o case_n it_o may_v plain_o be_v see_v that_o they_o approach_v near_o unto_o we_o than_o we_o do_v to_o they_o in_o admit_v they_o hereby_o to_o our_o communion_n without_o have_v make_v for_o all_o that_o on_o our_o part_n any_o essential_a alteration_n in_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n but_o some_o will_v say_v how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o speak_v here_o so_o moderate_o of_o the_o lutheran_n your_o first_o reformer_n be_v not_o at_o all_o so_o reserve_v it_o be_v very_o well_o know_v how_o far_o the_o sharp_a word_n which_o they_o write_v one_o against_o another_o do_v proceed_v they_o who_o institution_n you_o follow_v find_v that_o our_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v more_o consequent_a than_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o testify_v in_o some_o sort_n a_o great_a aversion_n for_o that_o of_o the_o lutheran_n than_o for_o we_o whence_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o have_v admit_v they_o into_o your_o communion_n the_o consequence_n will_v conclude_v and_o why_o will_v you_o not_o
full_a liberty_n of_o advice_n and_o suppose_v that_o it_o have_v be_v find_v that_o the_o deputy_n have_v yield_v unto_o something_o at_o the_o conference_n against_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o church_n it_o will_v not_o only_o have_v be_v disapprove_v but_o blame_v and_o censure_v if_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o have_v be_v find_v that_o they_o have_v do_v their_o duty_n as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v presume_v they_o will_v that_o the_o form_n of_o confession_n whereupon_o they_o have_v agree_v have_v contain_v all_o the_o essential_a fundamental_a article_n of_o what_o be_v believe_v among_o we_o and_o that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o article_n in_o this_o form_n of_o confession_n which_o have_v destroy_v our_o fundamental_a article_n in_o this_o case_n we_o shall_v have_v praise_v god_n for_o so_o full_a and_o happy_a a_o reunion_n the_o synod_n will_v have_v approve_v and_o ratify_v it_o they_o will_v have_v frame_v a_o act_n that_o shall_v have_v contain_v the_o motive_n the_o ground_n and_o principal_a reason_n of_o their_o decree_n and_o the_o deputy_n of_o province_n will_v have_v be_v enjoin_v to_o obtain_v also_o the_o final_a acquiescence_n of_o the_o church_n by_o their_o silence_n let_v it_o now_o be_v judge_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o all_o this_o that_o in_o the_o least_o tend_v to_o establish_v that_o infallibility_n and_o absolute_a dominion_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n attribute_n either_o to_o pope_n or_o council_n which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n here_o in_o question_n whether_o there_o be_v the_o least_o pretext_n to_o accuse_v we_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v of_o a_o feign_a niceness_n and_o of_o a_o abandon_v of_o our_o belief_n or_o whether_o this_o be_v not_o a_o trick_n of_o expression_n not_o so_o equitable_a as_o shall_v be_v to_o cast_v a_o foul_a insinuation_n on_o a_o great_a body_n without_o any_o ground_n episcopacy_n xxi_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o episcopacy_n there_o now_o remain_v only_o for_o finish_v this_o answer_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n treatise_n that_o we_o speak_v a_o word_n in_o particular_a touch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o episcopacy_n this_o be_v again_o one_o of_o those_o place_n where_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n be_v as_o it_o be_v upon_o thorn_n in_o the_o first_o impression_n of_o his_o treatise_n after_o have_v say_v as_o in_o passage_n that_o god_n have_v institute_v the_o primacy_n of_o st._n peter_n 165_o pa._n 165_o to_o preserve_v unity_n he_o add_v this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n oblige_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n magistram_fw-la of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o to_o render_v a_o perfect_a obedience_n to_o the_o sovereign_n high_a priest_n successor_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n make_v by_o pius_n the_o iv_o in_o execution_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n do_v contain_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o so_o many_o word_n but_o in_o the_o second_o edition_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n recall_v what_o there_o be_v strongly_a speak_v in_o the_o former_a to_o wit_n these_o term_n of_o mistress_n sovereign_a vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o perfect_a obedience_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o whether_o it_o be_v that_o he_o will_v not_o engage_v to_o maintain_v these_o expression_n in_o the_o extent_n of_o they_o or_o whether_o he_o be_v loath_a to_o anger_v we_o or_o in_o fine_a for_o some_o other_o reason_n that_o he_o have_v now_o behold_v what_o he_o have_v put_v in_o stead_n of_o what_o he_o take_v away_o we_o acknowledge_v 〈…〉_o new_a edition_n 〈…〉_o say_v he_o this_o same_o primacy_n speak_v of_o that_o of_o st._n peter_n which_o we_o have_v say_v that_o he_o suppose_v in_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n unto_o who_o be_v due_a for_o this_o reason_n the_o submission_n and_o obedience_n which_o the_o holy_a council_n and_o father_n have_v always_o teach_v so_o that_o in_o stead_n of_o explain_v to_o we_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n as_o he_o promise_v he_o will_v do_v by_o his_o exposition_n for_o all_o the_o instruction_n and_o all_o the_o light_n he_o will_v give_v we_o he_o remit_v we_o to_o the_o father_n and_o council_n and_o keep_v himself_o yet_o in_o term_n more_o general_a more_o obscure_a and_o more_o doubtful_a than_o the_o profession_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o very_a council_n itself_o it_o be_v true_a the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n here_o again_o cover_v his_o silence_n with_o this_o pretext_n that_o as_o to_o thing_n which_o be_v dispute_v of_o in_o the_o school_n though_o the_o minister_n incessant_o allege_v they_o to_o render_v this_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n odious_a it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o speak_v of_o they_o because_o say_v he_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o catholic_n faitb_n but_o in_o all_o likelihood_n by_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v dispute_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n here_o only_o mean_v the_o abuse_n of_o dispensation_n and_o of_o indulgence_n the_o power_n of_o depose_v king_n and_o to_o absolve_v subject_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o such_o other_o matter_n as_o be_v true_o odious_a but_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o precise_o regard_v the_o submission_n that_o the_o pope_n pretend_v due_a whether_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o of_o government_n ecclesiastical_a though_o they_o be_v dispute_v as_o well_o out_o of_o the_o school_n as_o in_o the_o school_n if_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n aver_v that_o they_o be_v no_o more_o of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n we_o demand_v no_o more_o herein_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n contain_v nothing_o of_o great_a moment_n as_o to_o what_o remain_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o show_v in_o this_o place_n that_o the_o father_n and_o council_n unto_o who_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n refer_v we_o have_v not_o always_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v as_o the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o nor_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o sovereign_a high_a priest_n sole_a head_n and_o only_a successor_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o that_o in_o this_o quality_n the_o submission_n and_o obedience_n which_o he_o at_o this_o day_n claim_v of_o all_o the_o world_n be_v due_a unto_o he_o those_o who_o be_v but_o the_o least_o verse_v in_o history_n and_o judge_v without_o prejudice_n do_v well_o know_v constantinopolitanae_n dist_n 22._o ca._n constantinopolitanae_n that_o it_o be_v only_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n once_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n which_o have_v give_v occasion_n to_o the_o exalt_v the_o holy_a chair_n as_o they_o speak_v not_o only_o above_o other_o episcopal_a chair_n but_o above_o king_n and_o emperor_n themselves_o it_o may_v also_o be_v show_v very_o clear_o by_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o very_o pretend_a primacy_n of_o st._n peter_n upon_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v ground_v be_v not_o itself_o found_v upon_o any_o thing_n for_o st._n peter_n have_v no_o more_o but_o his_o function_n of_o a_o apostle_n like_o the_o rest_n it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o eight_o of_o the_o act_n that_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v in_o jerusalem_n send_v peter_n and_o john_n to_o samaria_n a_o passage_n which_o do_v not_o intimate_v 2.11_o gal._n 2.9_o gal._n 2.11_o that_o st._n peter_n do_v attribute_v to_o himself_o any_o dominion_n over_o his_o fellow_n labourer_n the_o other_o be_v call_v pillar_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o he_o st._n paul_n say_v himself_o that_o he_o withstand_v he_o to_o the_o face_n and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o st._n peter_n have_v some_o primacy_n among_o the_o apostle_n either_o because_o of_o his_o age_n or_o of_o his_o zeal_n as_o indeed_o it_o appear_v he_o speak_v first_o on_o several_a occasion_n who_o see_v not_o that_o it_o can_v be_v at_o most_o but_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n and_o rank_n in_o his_o own_o person_n such_o as_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o all_o assembly_n and_o which_o will_v make_v no_o more_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n than_o for_o those_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o in_o general_a for_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o be_v also_o one_o of_o those_o controversy_n upon_o which_o there_o be_v whole_a volume_n write_v and_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n pass_v so_o light_o over_o this_o matter_n as_o he_o do_v this_o be_v not_o a_o place_n neither_o to_o search_v deeply_o into_o it_o we_o have_v only_o to_o add_v for_o a_o conclusion_n
and_o practice_n that_o aggrieve_v we_o be_v at_o best_a but_o private_a opinion_n that_o may_v be_v lay_v aside_o this_o be_v it_o they_o ordinary_o discourse_v to_o we_o to_o make_v we_o inclinable_a to_o themselves_o and_o this_o be_v in_o particular_a the_o sense_n and_o soul_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n treatise_n more_o open_o indeed_o and_o more_o express_o in_o the_o manuscript_n copy_n and_o what_o have_v be_v cite_v of_o the_o first_o edition_n but_o yet_o clear_o enough_o in_o the_o second_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o profession_n of_o faith_n declare_v in_o so_o many_o word_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v and_o receive_v all_o the_o tradition_n all_o the_o institution_n &_o all_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o do_v comprise_v general_o all_o that_o be_v know_v and_o that_o be_v not_o know_v it_o say_v yet_o more_o express_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v unto_o saint_n to_o worship_v their_o relic_n have_v image_n of_o jesus_n christ_n of_o the_o virgin_n and_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n and_o render_v they_o the_o honour_n and_o the_o worship_n due_a unto_o they_o admit_v of_o seven_o true_a sacrament_n and_o embrace_v all_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v say_v and_o decide_v touch_v justification_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o merit_n of_o work_n satisfaction_n purgatory_n and_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n believe_v the_o conversion_n of_o all_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o all_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n which_o be_v call_v transubstantiation_n and_o that_o all_o jesus_n christ_n be_v entire_o receive_v and_o the_o true_a sacrament_n under_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o of_o the_o two_o species_n last_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n to_o swear_v entire_a obedience_n unto_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o general_o to_o receive_v all_o other_o thing_n whatsoever_o that_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o council_n and_o particular_o by_o the_o council_n of_o tre●●_n which_o do_v comprise_v general_o wh●●_n a_o man_n will_v &_o all_o that_o be_v in_o dispute_n t●●●_n be_v what_o be_v formal_o require_v of_o th●●●_n that_o present_v themselves_o before_o the_o c●rate_a the_o bishop_n or_o the_o great_a pe●tentiary_n now_o let_v all_o these_o article_n 〈◊〉_d faith_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o stile_n 〈◊〉_d the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n treatise_n and_o afterward_o let_v it_o be_v mature_o judge_v if_o this_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o doctrine_n for_o our_o part_n be_v very_o far_o from_o aggravate_v the_o difference_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o or_o from_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o make_v a_o great_a distance_n betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o there_o be_v indeed_o we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o to_o be_v desire_v for_o the_o good_a of_o christian_a religion_n and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o bring_v man_n spirit_n mutual_o near_a that_o that_o all_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n general_o will_v at_o least_o accommodate_v themselves_o free_o &_o open_o unto_o these_o sort_n of_o sweetning_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v and_o that_o instead_o of_o heighten_v the_o difference_n that_o there_o may_v be_v between_o his_o exposition_n and_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o common_o profess_v they_o will_v write_v on_o the_o contrary_a in_o the_o same_o sense_n that_o he_o do_v and_o clear_a and_o full_a yet_o than_o he_o have_v write_v that_o last_o they_o will_v all_o say_v at_o least_o as_o he_o do_v that_o this_o be_v alone_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n religion_n at_o least_o will_v find_v itself_o discharge_v and_o free_v of_o a_o great_a many_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n which_o do_v nothing_o but_o burden_n conscience_n &_o this_o will_v be_v in_o sundry_a point_n as_o one_o of_o those_o insensible_a change_n which_o have_v come_v into_o the_o church_n but_o a_o change_n for_o the_o better_a and_o a_o happy_a beginning_n of_o reformation_n that_o may_v have_v much_o more_o happy_a consequence_n the_o bull_n of_o our_o mo●…_n holy_a lord_n lord_n piu●_n by_o divine_a providence_n pope_n the_o iv_o of_o tha●_n name_n touch_v th●_n form_n of_o the_o oath_n 〈◊〉_d profession_n of_o faith_n translate_v out_o of_o latin_a pius_fw-la bishop_n servant_z of_o the_o ●_z of_o god_n ad_fw-la perpetuam_fw-la 〈◊〉_d memoriam_fw-la for_o a_o perpetual_a record_n the_o duty_n of_o our_o apostolic_a charge_n which_o lie_v upon_o 〈◊〉_d require_v that_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o lord_n almighty_n for_o the_o prudent_a guidance_n of_o his_o church_n have_v vouchsafe_v from_o heaven_n to_o inspire_v in_o the_o holy_a father_n assemble_v in_o his_o name_n we_o make_v haste_n to_o put_v in_o execution_n without_o delay_n for_o his_o praise_n and_o glory_n ●_z therefore_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n all_o who_o it_o shall_v henceforth_o happen_v to_o be_v set_v over_o cathedral_n or_o superior_a church_n or_o to_o be_v provide_v for_o by_o any_o dignity_n or_o canonry_n of_o the_o same_o or_o any_o other_o whatsoever_o ecclesiastical_a benefice_n have_v cure_n of_o soul_n be_v bind_v to_o make_v public_a profession_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n and_o to_o engage_v and_o swear_v that_o they_o will_v continue_v in_o obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o will_v also_o that_o the_o same_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o whosoever_o shall_v be_v dispose_v of_o in_o monastery_n convent_v religious_a house_n or_o other_o place_n whatsoever_o of_o whatsoever_o regular_a order_n even_o of_o the_o military_a one_o by_o whatsoever_o name_n or_o title_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n that_o what_o concern_v our_o care_n may_v not_o be_v the_o least_o want_v to_o any_o that_o a_o profession_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n may_v be_v uniform_o exibit_v by_o all_o and_o that_o one_o certain_a form_n of_o it_o may_v be_v know_v unto_o all_o do_v by_o power_n apostolic_a strict_o enjoin_v and_o command_v by_o the_o tenor_n of_o these_o present_n that_o this_o very_a form_n annex_v to_o these_o present_n be_v publish_v and_o that_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o observe_v all_o the_o world_n over_o by_o those_o by_o who_o according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o say_a council_n it_o do_v belong_v and_o by_o all_o other_o person_n aforesaid_a and_o that_o under_o the_o penalty_n by_o the_o say_a council_n enact_v against_o offender_n in_o this_o case_n the_o aforesaid_a profession_n be_v solemn_o make_v according_a to_o this_o and_o no_o other_o form_n in_o this_o tenor_n in._n do_v with_o firm_a faith_n believe_v and_o profess_v all_o and_o every_o thing_n and_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o symbol_n of_o faith_n which_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n use_v viz._n stantinople_n article_n of_o faith_n take_v out_o of_o the_o symbol_n of_o nice_a and_o con_n stantinople_n i_o believe_v in_o one_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a and_o in_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v forth_o of_o his_o father_n before_o all_o age_n god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n beget_v not_o make_v of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v who_o for_o we_o man_n and_o our_o salvation_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o be_v incarnate_a by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o make_v man_n be_v also_o crucify_v for_o we_o under_o pontius_n pilate_n suffer_v and_o be_v bury_v and_o rise_v again_o the_o three_o day_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o shall_v come_v again_o with_o glory_n to_o judge_v both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a of_o who_o kingdom_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o lord_n and_o giver_n of_o life_n who_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n who_o together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v worship_v and_o glorify_v who_o speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o one_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n i_o confess_v one_o baptism_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o i_o look_v for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v amen_n the_o apostolical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n and_o the_o other_o observation_n ancient_n article_n of_o faith_n touch_v the_o matter_n in_o cotroversie_n which_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v add_v to_o the_o ancient_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o same_o
to_o proceed_v too_o far_o in_o the_o question_n what_o have_v be_v here_o say_v which_o be_v only_o take_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o sacrament_n &_o the_o style_n of_o the_o scripture_n may_v suffice_v to_o show_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n that_o it_o be_v not_o without_o reason_n that_o we_o do_v understand_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n in_o a_o mystical_a and_o figurative_a sense_n let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o he_o will_v produce_v on_o his_o part_n for_o the_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n his_o discourse_n do_v reduce_v itself_o unto_o two_o proposition_n the_o first_o be_v that_o it_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o shall_v effective_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o the_o other_o that_o there_o be_v no_o natural_a relation_n betwixt_o bread_n and_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o our_o saviour_n have_v only_o say_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n without_o explain_v they_o as_o he_o do_v ordinary_o other_o figurative_a expression_n the_o law_n of_o discourse_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n speak_v do_v not_o permit_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v take_v otherwise_o than_o in_o a_o proper_a and_o literal_a sense_n as_o to_o the_o first_o touch_v our_o saviour_n intention_n it_o be_v a_o good_a principle_n provide_v it_o be_v well_o establish_v for_o jesus_n christ_n can_v do_v what_o he_o will_v &_o what_o he_o will_v be_v do_v as_o he_o will_v and_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n have_v no_o need_n to_o enlarge_v upon_o the_o power_n of_o god_n as_o he_o do_v in_o what_o follow_v nor_o to_o seek_v for_o reason_n why_o jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o give_v we_o his_o flesh_n in_o its_o very_a form_n but_o under_o the_o covert_n of_o bread_n that_o so_o we_o may_v not_o conceive_v a_o horror_n at_o the_o eat_v it_o these_o be_v the_o common_a place_n of_o the_o first_o inventor_n of_o this_o opinion_n and_o of_o all_o those_o who_o have_v follow_v they_o and_o yet_o nevertheless_o all_o this_o have_v nothing_o of_o solidity_n because_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n we_o concern_v not_o ourselves_o to_o examine_v whether_o god_n be_v able_a to_o do_v the_o thing_n but_o whether_o this_o thing_n be_v possible_a in_o itself_o or_o if_o it_o do_v not_o imply_v a_o contradiction_n and_o on_o the_o other_o if_o it_o be_v matter_n of_o horror_n to_o eat_v true_a humane_a flesh_n the_o covert_n may_v diminish_v this_o horror_n but_o it_o can_v quite_o take_v it_o away_o especial_o if_o a_o man_n be_v certain_o persuade_v that_o he_o do_v true_o eat_v humane_a flesh_n and_o beside_o that_o such_o flesh_n for_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o tender_a veneration_n but_o to_o conclude_v how_o be_v it_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n prove_v that_o this_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o shall_v effective_o eat_v his_o flesh_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v eat_v the_o victim_n which_o be_v offer_v for_o they_o etc._n pag._n 81_o 82_o 83_o etc._n etc._n so_o say_v he_o jesus_n christ_n our_o true_a sacrifice_n will_v that_o we_o shall_v effective_o eat_v his_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n the_o jew_n be_v forbid_v to_o eat_v the_o sacrifice_n offer_v for_o sin_n to_o show_v they_o that_o the_o true_a expiation_n be_v not_o make_v under_o the_o law_n and_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n they_o be_v forbid_v to_o eat_v blood_n because_o the_o blood_n be_v give_v for_o the_o atonement_n of_o soul_n but_o by_o a_o contrary_a reason_n jesus_n christ_n will_v that_o we_o shall_v eat_v his_o flesh_n to_o show_v that_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v accomplish_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v drink_v his_o blood_n because_o it_o be_v pour_v out_o for_o our_o sin_n thus_o it_o be_v that_o instead_o of_o give_v we_o reason_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n give_v we_o only_a comparison_n relation_n agreeance_n as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o know_a rule_n that_o comparison_n and_o example_n may_v serve_v well_o to_o illustrate_v thing_n already_o prove_v but_o can_v never_o prove_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o question_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a law_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o as_o they_o offer_v up_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v type_n of_o jesus_n christ_n our_o true_a sacrifice_n to_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n jesus_n christ_n offer_v up_o himself_o to_o reconcile_v we_o unto_o his_o father_n this_o be_v the_o true_a accomplishment_n of_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o principal_a and_o true_a relation_n which_o there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a &_o new_a testament_n therefore_o also_o it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n give_v up_o the_o ghost_n say_v these_o last_o and_o great_a word_n 19.30_o joh._n 19.30_o it_o be_v finish_v the_o apostle_n st._n paul_n which_o make_v a_o parallel_n between_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n and_o of_o jesus_n christ_n insist_o only_o on_o this_o point_n that_o under_o the_o law_n the_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o be_v reiterated_a every_o day_n whereas_o jesus_n christ_n offer_v himself_o only_a once_o and_o we_o see_v not_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n pursue_v any_o far_a mystery_n in_o it_o to_o press_v further_o these_o sort_n of_o relation_n and_o difference_n to_o make_v new_a doctrine_n and_o to_o bring_v all_o that_o be_v say_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v say_v or_o deny_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a this_o will_v be_v to_o make_v article_n of_o faith_n &_o worship_n upon_o consequence_n wherein_o humane_a reason_n will_v have_v too_o much_o share_v but_o nevertheless_o if_o they_o will_v have_v it_o so_o that_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n intend_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o relation_n betwixt_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v the_o representation_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o he_o himself_o offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v that_o all_o the_o relation_n and_o all_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n that_o we_o know_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v oppose_v to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n that_o whereas_o the_o jew_n under_o the_o law_n do_v servile_o and_o carnal_o tie_v themselves_o to_o outward_a and_o material_a action_n it_o concern_v christian_n under_o the_o gospel_n to_o take_v all_o spiritual_o and_o lift_v up_o their_o soul_n &_o heart_n unto_o heaven_n 6.63_o jo._n 6.63_o the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n that_o quicken_v the_o jew_n lay_v their_o hand_n upon_o the_o head_n of_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o do_v eat_v of_o they_o to_o signify_v the_o union_n which_o they_o have_v with_o they_o this_o be_v true_a we_o lay_v hold_v on_o jesus_n christ_n by_o faith_n we_o eat_v he_o by_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o speech_n of_o st._n austin_n believe_v and_o thou_o have_v eat_v the_o jew_n do_v not_o eat_v the_o sin-offering_n nor_o do_v they_o ever_o eat_v of_o the_o blood_n we_o eat_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o our_o sacrifice_n and_o we_o drink_v his_o mystical_a blood_n and_o as_o the_o expiation_n of_o our_o sin_n be_v actual_o make_v by_o his_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n so_o our_o saviour_n set_v before_o our_o eye_n the_o sacred_a symbol_n of_o his_o dead_a body_n as_o seal_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o of_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n see_v here_o how_o we_o may_v enlarge_v for_o our_o edification_n the_o relation_n and_o difference_n which_o we_o may_v find_v in_o this_o case_n betwixt_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n betwixt_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o divine_a sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n these_o consideration_n be_v right_a pious_a and_o conform_v to_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o as_o to_o the_o main_a that_o which_o be_v call_v a_o doctrine_n and_o a_o worship_n and_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v the_o eat_n of_o the_o proper_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v not_o be_v found_v upon_o relation_n and_o agreeance_n but_o upon_o a_o clear_a and_o positive_a revelation_n 84._o pag._n 84._o but_o this_o eat_n say_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n here_o aught_o to_o be_v as_o real_a as_o the_o expiation_n of_o sin_n be_v actual_a and_o effective_a under_o the_o new_a covenant_n in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o must_v be_v observe_v here_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n do_v perpetual_o mistake_v himself_o upon_o the_o term_n of_o real_a in_o the_o question_n of_o
those_o which_o he_o have_v already_o accomplish_v for_o our_o salvation_n wherefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o if_o he_o give_v unto_o every_o one_o of_o we_o the_o proper_a substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n he_o do_v it_o to_o imprint_v in_o our_o heart_n that_o it_o be_v for_o we_o that_o he_o take_v they_o and_o that_o it_o be_v for_o we_o that_o he_o offer_v they_o as_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o a_o little_a afterward_o he_o add_v our_o adversary_n have_v very_o well_o see_v that_o simple_a figure_n and_o simple_a sign_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o satisfy_v christistian_n accustom_v to_o the_o bounty_n of_o a_o god_n which_o give_v himself_o so_o real_o unto_o we_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v accuse_v to_o deny_v this_o real_a participation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o their_o sacrament_n behold_v here_o the_o reason_n that_o he_o say_v have_v force_v we_o to_o approach_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o christian_n be_v then_o either_o very_o ingrateful_a or_o very_o difficult_a to_o be_v content_v if_o they_o be_v not_o satisfy_v that_o jesus_n christ_n die_v for_o they_o that_o these_o sacred_a sign_n assure_v they_o of_o it_o and_o that_o they_o serve_v they_o as_o a_o effectual_a and_o save_a mean_n to_o raise_v their_o heart_n and_o their_o faith_n unto_o jesus_n christ_n they_o have_v then_o the_o ear_n of_o their_o understanding_n close_o stop_v if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o these_o sacred_a sign_n join_v unto_o the_o word_n do_v not_o yet_o tell_v they_o plain_o and_o loud_a enough_o that_o jesus_n christ_n become_v man_n for_o they_o that_o his_o body_n be_v break_v for_o they_o and_o that_o last_o his_o blood_n be_v pour_v out_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n the_o opinion_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n add_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v present_a be_v very_o far_o from_o better_a set_v forth_o his_o death_n incumber_n as_o i_o may_v so_o say_v the_o conception_n of_o it_o as_o have_v be_v show_v before_o because_o it_o represent_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o a_o live_a state_n under_o dead_a sign_n and_o moreover_o the_o way_n of_o give_v these_o sign_n in_o a_o language_n not_o understand_v or_o ill_o understand_v make_v much_o less_o impression_n in_o the_o heart_n than_o the_o way_n wherein_o it_o have_v be_v show_v they_o be_v give_v among_o we_o but_o in_o fine_a where_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o consequence_n the_o love_n which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v for_o we_o induce_v he_o to_o die_v real_o for_o we_o therefore_o it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o this_o love_n to_o give_v real_o unto_o we_o the_o proper_a substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n what_o bond_n or_o what_o necessary_a consequence_n be_v there_o of_o one_o and_o the_o other_o of_o these_o thing_n from_o what_o time_n and_o in_o what_o place_n have_v it_o be_v know_v or_o usual_a that_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o love_n in_o any_o to_o give_v his_o proper_a flesh_n to_o eat_v to_o they_o who_o he_o love_v i_o do_v not_o say_v only_o by_o morsel_n as_o some_o possible_o may_v say_v the_o capernaite_v understand_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o in_o any_o manner_n or_o under_o any_o covert_n under_o which_o it_o may_v be_v put_v for_o although_o god_n do_v testify_v his_o love_n unto_o we_o by_o incomprehensible_a effect_n though_o his_o way_n be_v not_o our_o way_n grace_n do_v not_o for_o all_o that_o destroy_v nature_n his_o way_n be_v above_o our_o way_n and_o even_o contrary_a to_o what_o we_o have_v of_o evil_a and_o irregularity_n but_o not_o at_o all_o to_o what_o they_o have_v that_o be_v good_a and_o right_n which_o proceed_v from_o god_n himself_o what_o there_o be_v incomprehensible_a in_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o love_n be_v nothing_o as_o to_o the_o manner_n as_o we_o may_v say_v but_o to_o the_o degree_n or_o rather_o the_o infinity_n of_o this_o love_n itself_o for_o as_o to_o the_o other_o point_n we_o in_o some_o sort_n conceive_v all_o that_o this_o infinite_a love_n make_v he_o do_v for_o we_o by_o a_o comparison_n though_o very_o imperfect_a of_o what_o a_o entire_a love_n do_v make_v we_o do_v one_o for_o another_o to_o pay_v for_o another_o be_v the_o true_a office_n of_o a_o friend_n and_o to_o die_v for_o another_o have_v always_o pass_v for_o a_o true_a test_n of_o love_n 15.13_o joh._n 15.13_o great_a love_n have_v no_o man_n than_o this_o that_o a_o man_n lie_v down_o his_o life_n for_o his_o friend_n to_o die_v for_o a_o enemy_n be_v a_o generosity_n that_o have_v have_v no_o example_n among_o man_n before_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n jesus_n christ_n die_v for_o we_o who_o be_v original_o his_o creature_n but_o be_v become_v his_o enemy_n this_o be_v that_o which_o this_o love_n have_v in_o it_o incomprehensible_a and_o nevertheless_o this_o love_n which_o be_v foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n be_v accomplish_v in_o the_o time_n that_o be_v foretell_v but_o neither_o pprophecy_n nor_o reason_n nor_o humane_a manner_n ever_o yet_o teach_v we_o that_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v give_v we_o his_o real_a flesh_n to_o eat_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o body_n as_o a_o token_n of_o the_o love_n that_o he_o have_v for_o we_o and_o when_o jesus_n christ_n say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n 6._o john_n 6._o that_o he_o will_v give_v his_o flesh_n for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o whosoever_o do_v not_o eat_v his_o flesh_n have_v no_o life_n in_o he_o see_v that_o this_o word_n offend_v many_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v unto_o we_o that_o our_o saviour_n condemn_v their_o surprise_n but_o only_o that_o he_o present_o explain_v this_o speech_n unto_o they_o and_o that_o he_o make_v they_o understand_v that_o they_o shall_v receive_v it_o spiritual_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v always_o fall_v into_o this_o error_n that_o although_o they_o do_v not_o direct_o deny_v that_o the_o communion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o jesus_n christ_n by_o faith_n be_v very_o real_a &_o of_o its_o self_n suffice_v to_o salvation_n as_o they_o do_v confess_v in_o particular_a of_o the_o communion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o he_o either_o by_o the_o word_n or_o by_o baptism_n nevertheless_o always_o when_o there_o be_v any_o mention_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n they_o have_v this_o impression_n reign_v in_o their_o mind_n which_o overbear_v all_o other_o that_o jesus_n christ_n can_v give_v himself_o real_o unto_o they_o but_o when_o they_o believe_v that_o he_o give_v his_o proper_a flesh_n to_o be_v eat_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o their_o body_n it_o be_v from_o this_o apprehension_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n faith_n here_o again_o that_o jesus_n christ_n make_v as_o taste_v his_o bounty_n by_o thing_n as_o effectual_a as_o those_o which_o he_o accomplish_v for_o our_o salvation_n as_o if_o the_o faith_n which_o he_o give_v as_o and_o the_o communion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o he_o by_o his_o spirit_n even_o out_o of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o all_o of_o these_o effectual_a thing_n and_o as_o effectual_a as_o it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o die_v for_o we_o let_v we_o now_o come_v unto_o the_o objection_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n make_v against_o some_o of_o our_o expression_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v approach_v near_o unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 146._o pa._n 146._o in_o the_o first_o place_n he_o seem_v to_o contradict_v himself_o for_o he_o say_v afterward_o that_o the_o more_o we_o explain_v ourselves_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o we_o upon_o this_o article_n the_o more_o contrary_a we_o find_v ourselves_o one_o to_o another_o he_o give_v also_o the_o reason_n for_o it_o which_o be_v that_o the_o more_o we_o consider_v the_o consequence_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o more_o we_o be_v discourage_v with_o the_o difficulty_n which_o sense_n and_o reason_n discover_v in_o it_o this_o do_v not_o import_n that_o we_o be_v approach_v near_a beside_o there_o be_v very_o few_o person_n who_o shall_v hear_v he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v approach_v unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o will_v believe_v that_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o some_o of_o our_o late_a synod_n or_o some_o of_o our_o more_o famous_a modern_a doctor_n have_v relax_v somewhat_o of_o our_o doctrine_n either_o in_o the_o sense_n or_o in_o the_o expression_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n there_o be_v nothing_o less_o than_o this_o all_o this_o accusation_n bear_v only_o upon_o three_o diverse_a expression_n draw_v from_o our_o catechism_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v know_v the_o ancient_a explanation_n of_o our_o doctrine_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n
the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n take_v for_o a_o absolute_a power_n that_o which_o be_v only_o a_o condition_n and_o a_o limitation_n to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o synod_n religion_n require_v among_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v presume_v god_n preside_v in_o these_o assembly_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o justice_n and_o decency_n yea_o even_a custom_n permit_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v explain_v ourselves_o otherwise_o but_o upon_o the_o whole_a every_o one_o see_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o form_n be_v as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v we_o promise_v to_o submit_v ourselves_o unto_o what_o you_o shall_v resolve_v if_o as_o we_o hope_v of_o you_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n you_o take_v his_o word_n and_o his_o truth_n for_o the_o rule_n of_o your_o thought_n and_o conduct_n and_o thereby_o make_v appear_v that_o it_o be_v indeed_o his_o spirit_n that_o preside_v in_o your_o consultation_n and_o govern_v you_o and_o that_o you_o do_v not_o proceed_v by_o canvas_v and_o cabal_n or_o by_o humane_a motive_n and_o interest_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n author_n testify_v it_o be_v do_v in_o the_o latter_a council_n of_o constance_n and_o of_o trent_n if_o it_o be_v say_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n a_o persuasion_n found_v upon_o a_o humane_a presumption_n can_v any_o man_n in_o conscience_n promise_v to_o submit_v himself_o to_o what_o shall_v be_v resolve_v and_o if_o this_o persuasion_n have_v its_o foundation_n in_o a_o certain_a belief_n of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n give_v unto_o the_o church_n the_o catholic_n in_o this_o case_n demand_v no_o more_o we_o answer_v hereby_o that_o it_o be_v proper_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o labour_n to_o make_v upon_o it_o a_o double-horned_a argument_n for_o so_o we_o common_o call_v dilemma_n this_o persuasion_n be_v a_o judgement_n of_o charity_n which_o make_v we_o hope_v well_o of_o the_o intention_n of_o those_o that_o be_v depute_v unto_o these_o assembly_n and_o that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o warrant_v our_o promise_a to_o acquiesce_v unto_o what_o they_o resolve_v always_o provide_v that_o they_o have_v truth_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o consultation_n upon_o which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v though_o it_o may_v be_v too_o long_o to_o insist_v upon_o what_o be_v so_o clear_a in_o itself_o that_o our_o synod_n in_o the_o whole_a be_v make_v up_o only_o of_o divers_a deputy_n which_o have_v all_o of_o they_o their_o letter_n in_o the_o same_o form_n almost_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o have_v they_o which_o be_v depute_v unto_o the_o provincial_a estate_n so_o that_o thing_n be_v equal_a among_o they_o it_o can_v be_v say_v that_o this_o condition_n and_o this_o limitation_n can_v wound_v the_o dignity_n or_o just_a authority_n of_o these_o assembly_n these_o letter_n missive_n be_v proper_o nothing_o else_o but_o proxy_n or_o if_o the_o term_n please_v better_o in_o some_o measure_n resemble_v letter_n and_o commission_n which_o prince_n give_v to_o their_o ambassador_n or_o their_o envoy_n the_o ordinary_a style_v whereof_o be_v that_o they_o have_v entire_a trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o the_o integrity_n fidelity_n and_o ability_n of_o they_o who_o they_o send_v give_v they_o full_a power_n etc._n etc._n nevertheless_o with_o this_o condition_n understand_v all_o along_o that_o they_o govern_v themselves_o by_o their_o order_n and_o instruction_n and_o that_o if_o they_o conform_v themselves_o thereunto_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v conclude_v shall_v be_v confirm_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o these_o sort_n of_o letter_n of_o deputation_n and_o proxy_n in_o matter_n of_o business_n and_o the_o commission_n of_o prince_n be_v only_o in_o the_o quality_n and_o style_n of_o they_o who_o speak_v prince_n speak_v as_o prince_n man_n of_o business_n like_o man_n of_o business_n and_o church_n in_o a_o style_n pious_a and_o christian_n so_o that_o these_o letter_n missive_n not_o only_o give_v mere_o a_o limit_v and_o conditional_a power_n but_o the_o resolution_n themselves_o which_o be_v make_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o power_n though_o conformable_a to_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o condition_n express_v in_o the_o letter_n pass_v not_o for_o authentical_a decree_n till_o they_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n have_v as_o it_o be_v ratify_v they_o by_o their_o acquiescence_n and_o when_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o any_o church_n or_o any_o particular_a person_n find_v any_o difficulty_n therein_o the_o business_n be_v remit_v to_o further_a consideration_n in_o the_o follow_a synod_n because_o it_o be_v a_o constant_a principle_n of_o christianity_n according_a to_o we_o that_o faith_n be_v a_o firm_a persuasion_n and_o by_o consequence_n that_o man_n mind_n must_v be_v clear_v and_o render_v capable_a as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v of_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v teach_v that_o be_v to_o say_v make_v to_o taste_v the_o doctrine_n with_o a_o certain_a sweetness_n and_o not_o have_v the_o belief_n impose_v by_o constraint_n and_o absolute_a dominion_n what_o we_o have_v now_o say_v of_o these_o letter_n missive_n serve_v for_o answer_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n last_o objection_n touch_v the_o resolution_n take_v up_o at_o the_o synod_n of_o st._n faith_n for_o there_o be_v throughout_o the_o same_o foundation_n or_o rather_o the_o same_o pretence_n the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n strain_v himself_o more_o on_o this_o matter_n than_o on_o the_o other_o and_o again_o insult_v over_o we_o here_o as_o if_o we_o be_v of_o bad_a faith_n and_o of_o little_a accord_n among_o ourselves_o let_v we_o see_v what_o the_o matter_n be_v in_o the_o year_n 1578._o there_o be_v a_o overture_n of_o reconciliation_n make_v betwixt_o those_o that_o be_v call_v lutheran_n and_o our_o church_n of_o france_n by_o mean_n of_o a_o form_n of_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v to_o be_v general_a and_o common_a unto_o all_o the_o church_n the_o church_n of_o this_o kingdom_n be_v desire_v to_o depute_v good_a man_n authorise_v by_o the_o church_n with_o power_n to_o treat_v accord_n and_o decide_v all_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o other_o thing_n which_o may_v concern_v that_o union_n upon_o this_o proposition_n the_o synod_n decree_v that_o if_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n propose_v be_v send_v time_n enough_o it_o shall_v be_v examine_v in_o each_o provincial_a synod_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o synod_n depute_v four_o minister_n with_o letter_n and_o ample_a proxy_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n and_o of_o mounsieur_fw-fr the_o viscount_n of_o turenn_n and_o in_o case_n they_o shall_v not_o have_v time_n enough_o to_o examine_v this_o confession_n of_o faith_n in_o all_o the_o province_n they_o remit_v it_o unto_o the_o prudence_n of_o those_o deputy_n to_o accord_v and_o conclude_v of_o all_o point_n which_o shall_v come_v under_o deliberation_n whether_o of_o doctrine_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o may_v concern_v the_o good_a the_o union_n and_o the_o ease_n of_o all_o the_o church_n this_o be_v in_o sum_n the_o resolution_n of_o this_o synod_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n report_v it_o and_o it_o be_v plain_a here_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n and_o custom_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o he_o proceed_v with_o a_o kind_n of_o admiration_n to_o this_o head_n do_v the_o false_a squeamishness_n of_o the_o gentleman_n of_o the_o pretend_a reform_a religion_n come_v they_o have_v now_o thus_o and_o thus_o often_o upbraid_v to_o we_o as_o a_o weakness_n that_o submission_n which_o we_o have_v for_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o say_v they_o but_o a_o society_n of_o man_n subject_a to_o error_n and_o mean_a time_n they_o have_v not_o fear_v to_o commit_v their_o faith_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o four_o man_n with_o so_o large_a abandon_v their_o own_o judgement_n that_o they_o have_v give_v they_o full_a power_n to_o change_v the_o very_a confession_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o propose_v at_o this_o day_n to_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o that_o as_o a_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o contain_v nothing_o but_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n and_o for_o which_o they_o have_v say_v at_o their_o present_v it_o to_o our_o king_n that_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o person_n be_v ready_a to_o shed_v their_o blood_n to_o this_o head_n in_o fine_a be_v the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n evil_a reflection_n come_v they_o have_v say_v he_o thus_o and_o thus_o often_o upbraid_v to_o we_o as_o a_o weakness_n the_o submission_n which_o we_o have_v for_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o have_v be_v just_a that_o the_o bishop_n of_o condom_n will_v have_v be_v please_v to_o have_v tell_v we_o at_o least_o